home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1997-09-30 | 401.0 KB | 9,480 lines |
- *******The Project Gutenberg Etext of Rewards and Fairies******
- #3 in our series by Rudyard Kipling
-
-
- Copyright laws are changing all over the world, be sure to check
- the copyright laws for your country before posting these files!!
-
- Please take a look at the important information in this header.
- We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
- electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
-
-
- **Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
-
- **Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
-
- *These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
-
- Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
- further information is included below. We need your donations.
-
-
- Rewards and Fairies
-
- by Rudyard Kipling
-
- June, 1996 [Etext #556]
-
-
- *******The Project Gutenberg Etext of Rewards and Fairies******
- *****This file should be named rwfrs10.txt or rwfrs10.zip******
-
- Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, rwfrs11.txt.
- VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, rwfrs10a.txt.
-
-
- This etext was created by Jo Churcher, Scarborough, Ontario
- (jchurche@io.org)
-
-
- We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
- of the official release dates, for time for better editing.
-
- Please note: neither this list nor its contents are final till
- midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
- The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
- Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
- preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
- and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
- up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
- in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
- a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
- look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
- new copy has at least one byte more or less.
-
-
- Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
-
- We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
- fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
- to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
- searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
- projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
- per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
- million dollars per hour this year as we release thirty-two text
- files per month: or 400 more Etexts in 1996 for a total of 800.
- If these reach just 10% of the computerized population, then the
- total should reach 80 billion Etexts.
-
- The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
- Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
- This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
- which is only 10% of the present number of computer users. 2001
- should have at least twice as many computer users as that, so it
- will require us reaching less than 5% of the users in 2001.
-
-
- We need your donations more than ever!
-
-
- All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
- tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
- Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
- to IBC, too)
-
- For these and other matters, please mail to:
-
- Project Gutenberg
- P. O. Box 2782
- Champaign, IL 61825
-
- When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive
- Director:
- hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
-
- We would prefer to send you this information by email
- (Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
-
- ******
- If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
- FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
- [Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
-
- ftp uiarchive.cso.uiuc.edu
- login: anonymous
- password: your@login
- cd etext/etext90 through /etext96
- or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
- dir [to see files]
- get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
- GET INDEX?00.GUT
- for a list of books
- and
- GET NEW GUT for general information
- and
- MGET GUT* for newsletters.
-
- **Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
- (Three Pages)
-
-
- ***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
- Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
- They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
- your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
- someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
- fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
- disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
- you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
-
- *BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
- By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
- etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
- this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
- a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
- sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
- you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
- medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
-
- ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
- This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
- tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
- Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
- Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
- things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
- on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
- distribute it in the United States without permission and
- without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
- below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
- under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
-
- To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
- efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
- works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
- medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
- things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
- corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
- intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
- disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
- codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
-
- LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
- But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
- [1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
- etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
- liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
- legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
- UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
- INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
- OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
- POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
-
- If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
- receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
- you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
- time to the person you received it from. If you received it
- on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
- such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
- copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
- choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
- receive it electronically.
-
- THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
- WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
- TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
- LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
- PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
-
- Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
- the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
- above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
- may have other legal rights.
-
- INDEMNITY
- You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
- officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
- and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
- indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
- [1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
- or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
-
- DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
- You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
- disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
- "Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
- or:
-
- [1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
- requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
- etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
- if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
- binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
- including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
- cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
- *EITHER*:
- [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
- does *not* contain characters other than those
- intended by the author of the work, although tilde
- (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
- be used to convey punctuation intended by the
- author, and additional characters may be used to
- indicate hypertext links; OR
-
- [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
- no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
- form by the program that displays the etext (as is
- the case, for instance, with most word processors);
- OR
-
- [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
- no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
- etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
- or other equivalent proprietary form).
-
- [2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
- "Small Print!" statement.
-
- [3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
- net profits you derive calculated using the method you
- already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
- don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
- payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
- Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
- date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
- your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
-
- WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
- The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
- scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
- free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
- you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
- Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
-
- *END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
-
-
-
-
-
- REWARDS AND FAIRIES
-
- RUDYARD KIPLING
-
-
-
-
-
- Contents
- A Charm
- Introduction
- Cold Iron
- Cold Iron
- Gloriana
- The Two Cousins
- The Looking-Glass
- The Wrong Thing
- A Truthful Song
- King Henry VII and the Shipwrights
- Marklake Witches
- The Way through the Woods
- Brookland Road
- The Knife and the Naked Chalk
- The Run of the Downs
- Song of the Men's Side
- Brother Square-Toes
- Philadelphia
- If -
- 'A Priest in Spite of Himself'
- A St Helena Lullaby
- 'Poor Honest Men'
- The Conversion of St Wilfrid
- Eddi's Service
- Song of the Red War-Boat
- A Doctor of Medicine
- An Astrologer's Song
- 'Our Fathers of Old'
- Simple Simon
- The Thousandth Man
- Frankie's Trade
- The Tree of Justice
- The Ballad of Minepit Shaw
- A Carol
-
-
-
-
- A Charm
-
-
- Take of English earth as much
- As either hand may rightly clutch.
- In the taking of it breathe
- Prayer for all who lie beneath -
- Not the great nor well-bespoke,
- But the mere uncounted folk
- Of whose life and death is none
- Report or lamentation.
- Lay that earth upon thy heart,
- And thy sickness shall depart!
-
- It shall sweeten and make whole
- Fevered breath and festered soul;
- It shall mightily restrain
- Over-busy hand and brain;
- it shall ease thy mortal strife
- 'Gainst the immortal woe of life,
- Till thyself restored shall prove
- By what grace the Heavens do move.
-
- Take of English flowers these -
- Spring's full-faced primroses,
- Summer's wild wide-hearted rose,
- Autumn's wall-flower of the close,
- And, thy darkness to illume,
- Winter's bee-thronged ivy-bloom.
- Seek and serve them where they bide
- From Candlemas to Christmas-tide,
- For these simples used aright
- Shall restore a failing sight.
-
- These shall cleanse and purify
- Webbed and inward-turning eye;
- These shall show thee treasure hid,
- Thy familiar fields amid,
- At thy threshold, on thy hearth,
- Or about thy daily path;
- And reveal (which is thy need)
- Every man a King indeed!
-
-
-
-
- Introduction
-
-
- Once upon a time, Dan and Una, brother and sister, living in the
- English country, had the good fortune to meet with Puck, alias
- Robin Goodfellow, alias Nick o' Lincoln, alias Lob-lie-by-the-
- Fire, the last survivor in England of those whom mortals call
- Fairies. Their proper name, of course, is 'The People of the Hills'.
- This Puck, by means of the magic of Oak, Ash, and Thorn, gave
- the children power
-
- To see what they should see and hear what they should hear,
- Though it should have happened three thousand year.
-
- The result was that from time to time, and in different places on
- the farm and in the fields and in the country about, they saw and
- talked to some rather interesting people. One of these, for
- instance, was a Knight of the Norman Conquest, another a young
- Centurion of a Roman Legion stationed in England, another a
- builder and decorator of King Henry VII's time; and so on and so
- forth; as I have tried to explain in a book called PUCK OF POOK'S HILL.
-
- A year or so later, the children met Puck once more, and
- though they were then older and wiser, and wore boots regularly
- instead of going barefooted when they got the chance, Puck was
- as kind to them as ever, and introduced them to more people of
- the old days.
-
- He was careful, of course, to take away their memory of their
- walks and conversations afterwards, but otherwise he did not
- interfere; and Dan and Una would find the strangest sort of
- persons in their gardens or woods.
-
- In the stories that follow I am trying to tell something about
- those people.
-
-
-
-
- COLD IRON
-
-
- When Dan and Una had arranged to go out before breakfast, they
- did not remember that it was Midsummer Morning. They only
- wanted to see the otter which, old Hobden said, had been fishing
- their brook for weeks; and early morning was the time to surprise
- him. As they tiptoed out of the house into the wonderful stillness,
- the church clock struck five. Dan took a few steps across the
- dew-blobbed lawn, and looked at his black footprints.
-
- 'I think we ought to be kind to our poor boots,'he said. 'They'll
- get horrid wet.'
-
- it was their first summer in boots, and they hated them, so they
- took them off, and slung them round their necks, and paddled
- joyfully over the dripping turf where the shadows lay the wrong
- way, like evening in the East.
- The sun was well up and warm, but by the brook the last of the
- night mist still fumed off the water. They picked up the chain of
- otter's footprints on the mud, and followed it from the bank,
- between the weeds and the drenched mowing, while the birds
- shouted with surprise. Then the track left the brook and became a
- smear, as though a log had been dragged along.
-
- They traced it into Three Cows meadow, over the mill-sluice
- to the Forge, round Hobden's garden, and then up the slope till it
- ran out on the short turf and fern of Pook's Hill, and they heard
- the cock-pheasants crowing in the woods behind them.
-
- 'No use!' said Dan, questing like a puzzled hound. 'The dew's
- drying off, and old Hobden says otters'll travel for miles.'
-
- 'I'm sure we've travelled miles.' Una fanned herself with her
- hat. 'How still it is! It's going to be a regular roaster.' She looked
- down the valley, where no chimney yet smoked.
-
- 'Hobden's up!' Dan pointed to the open door of the Forge
- cottage. 'What d'you suppose he has for breakfast?'
- 'One of them. He says they eat good all times of the year,' Una
- jerked her head at some stately pheasants going down to the
- brook for a drink.
-
- A few steps farther on a fox broke almost under their bare feet,
- yapped, and trotted off.
-
- 'Ah, Mus' Reynolds -Mus' Reynolds'-Dan was quoting from
- old Hobden, - 'if I knowed all you knowed, I'd know something.' [See 'The
- Winged Hats' in PUCK OF POOK'S HILL.]
-
- I say,' - Una lowered her voice -'you know that funny feeling of
- things having happened before. I felt it when you said "Mus' Reynolds."'
-
- 'So did I,' Dan began. 'What is it?'
-
- They faced each other, stammering with excitement.
-
- 'Wait a shake! I'll remember in a minute. Wasn't it something
- about a fox - last year? Oh, I nearly had it then!' Dan cried.
-
- 'Be quiet!' said Una, prancing excitedly. 'There was something
- happened before we met the fox last year. Hills! Broken Hills -
- the play at the theatre - see what you see -'
-
- 'I remember now,' Dan shouted. 'It's as plain as the nose on
- your face - Pook's Hill - Puck's Hill - Puck!'
-
- 'I remember, too,' said Una. 'And it's Midsummer Day again!'
- The young fern on a knoll rustled, and Puck walked out,
- chewing a green-topped rush.
-
- 'Good Midsummer Morning to you! Here's a happy meeting,'
- said he. They shook hands all round, and asked questions.
-
- 'You've wintered well,' he said after a while, and looked them
- up and down. 'Nothing much wrong with you, seemingly.'
-
- 'They've put us into boots,' said Una. 'Look at my feet -
- they're all pale white, and my toes are squidged together awfully.'
-
- 'Yes - boots make a difference.' Puck wriggled his brown,
- square, hairy foot, and cropped a dandelion flower between the
- big toe and the next.
-
- 'I could do that - last year,' Dan said dismally, as he tried and
- failed. 'And boots simply ruin one's climbing.'
-
- 'There must be some advantage to them, I suppose,'said Puck,
- or folk wouldn't wear them. Shall we come this way?'
- They sauntered along side by side till they reached the gate at
- the far end of the hillside. Here they halted just like cattle, and let
- the sun warm their backs while they listened to the flies in the wood.
-
- 'Little Lindens is awake,' said Una, as she hung with her chin
- on the top rail. 'See the chimney smoke?'
-
- 'Today's Thursday, isn't it?' Puck turned to look at the old pink
- farmhouse across the little valley. 'Mrs Vincey's baking day.
- Bread should rise well this weather.' He yawned, and that set
- them both yawning.
-
- The bracken about rustled and ticked and shook in every direction.
- They felt that little crowds were stealing past.
-
- 'Doesn't that sound like - er - the People of the Hills?'said Una.
-
- 'It's the birds and wild things drawing up to the woods before
- people get about,' said Puck, as though he were Ridley the keeper.
-
- 'Oh, we know that. I only said it sounded like.'
-
- 'As I remember 'em, the People of the Hills used to make more
- noise. They'd settle down for the day rather like small birds
- settling down for the night. But that was in the days when they
- carried the high hand. Oh, me! The deeds that I've had act and
- part in, you'd scarcely believe!'
-
- 'I like that!' said Dan. 'After all you told us last year, too!'
-
- 'Only, the minute you went away, you made us forget
- everything,' said Una.
-
- Puck laughed and shook his head. 'I shall this year, too. I've
- given you seizin of Old England, and I've taken away your Doubt
- and Fear, but your memory and remembrance between whiles I'll
- keep where old Billy Trott kept his night-lines - and that's where
- he could draw 'em up and hide 'em at need. Does that suit?' He
- twinkled mischievously.
-
- 'It's got to suit,'said Una, and laughed. 'We Can't magic back at
- you.' She folded her arms and leaned against the gate. 'Suppose,
- now, you wanted to magic me into something - an otter? Could you?'
-
- 'Not with those boots round your neck.'
- 'I'll take them off.' She threw them on the turf. Dan's followed
- immediately. 'Now!' she said.
-
- 'Less than ever now you've trusted me. Where there's true
- faith, there's no call for magic.' Puck's slow smile broadened all
- over his face.
-
- 'But what have boots to do with it?' said Una, perching on the gate.
-
- 'There's Cold Iron in them,' said Puck, and settled beside her.
- 'Nails in the soles, I mean. It makes a difference.'
-
- 'How?'
- 'Can't you feel it does? You wouldn't like to go back to bare
- feet again, same as last year, would you? Not really?'
-
- 'No-o. I suppose I shouldn't - not for always. I'm growing
- up, you know,' said Una.
-
- 'But you told us last year, in the Long Slip - at the theatre - that
- you didn't mind Cold Iron,'said Dan.
-
- 'I don't; but folks in housen, as the People of the Hills call them,
- must be ruled by Cold Iron. Folk in housen are born on the near
- side of Cold Iron - there's iron 'in every man's house, isn't there?
- They handle Cold Iron every day of their lives, and their fortune's
- made or spoilt by Cold Iron in some shape or other. That's how it
- goes with Flesh and Blood, and one can't prevent it.'
-
- 'I don't quite see. How do you mean?'said Dan.
-
- 'It would take me some time to tell you.'
-
- 'Oh, it's ever so long to breakfast,' said Dan. 'We looked in the
- larder before we came out.' He unpocketed one big hunk of bread
- and Una another, which they shared with Puck.
-
- 'That's Little Lindens' baking,' he said, as his white teeth sunk
- in it. 'I know Mrs Vincey's hand.' He ate with a slow sideways
- thrust and grind, just like old Hobden, and, like Hobden, hardly
- dropped a crumb. The sun flashed on Little Lindens' windows,
- and the cloudless sky grew stiller and hotter in the valley.
-
- 'AH - Cold Iron,' he said at last to the impatient children. 'Folk
- in housen, as the People of the Hills say, grow careless about Cold
- Iron. They'll nail the Horseshoe over the front door, and forget to
- put it over the back. Then, some time or other, the People of the
- Hills slip in, find the cradle-babe in the corner, and -'
-
- 'Oh, I know. Steal it and leave a changeling,'Una cried.
-
- 'No,' said Puck firmly. 'All that talk of changelings is people's
- excuse for their own neglect. Never believe 'em. I'd whip 'em at
- the cart-tail through three parishes if I had my way.'
-
- 'But they don't do it now,' said Una.
-
- 'Whip, or neglect children? Umm! Some folks and some fields
- never alter. But the People of the Hills didn't work any changeling
- tricks. They'd tiptoe in and whisper and weave round the
- cradle-babe in the chimney-corner - a fag-end of a charm here, or
- half a spell there - like kettles singing; but when the babe's mind
- came to bud out afterwards, it would act differently from other
- people in its station. That's no advantage to man or maid. So I
- wouldn't allow it with my folks' babies here. I told Sir Huon so
- once.'
-
- 'Who was Sir Huon?' Dan asked, and Puck turned on him in
- quiet astonishment.
-
- 'Sir Huon of Bordeaux - he succeeded King Oberon. He had
- been a bold knight once, but he was lost on the road to Babylon, a
- long while back. Have you ever heard "How many miles to
- Babylon?"?'
-
- 'Of course,' said Dan, flushing.
-
- 'Well, Sir Huon was young when that song was new. But
- about tricks on mortal babies. I said to Sir Huon in the fern here,
- on just such a morning as this: "If you crave to act and influence
- on folk in housen, which I know is your desire, why don't you
- take some human cradle-babe by fair dealing, and bring him up
- among yourselves on the far side of Cold Iron - as Oberon did in
- time past? Then you could make him a splendid fortune, and send
- him out into the world."
-
- '"Time past is past time," says Sir Huon. "I doubt if we could
- do it. For one thing, the babe would have to be taken without
- wronging man, woman, or child. For another, he'd have to be
- born on the far side of Cold Iron - in some house where no Cold
- Iron ever stood; and for yet the third, he'd have to be kept from
- Cold Iron all his days till we let him find his fortune. No, it's not
- easy," he said, and he rode off, thinking. You see, Sir Huon had
- been a man once.
- 'I happened to attend Lewes Market next Woden's Day even,
- and watched the slaves being sold there - same as pigs are sold at
- Robertsbridge Market nowadays. Only, the pigs have rings on
- their noses, and the slaves had rings round their necks.'
-
- 'What sort of rings?' said Dan.
-
- 'A ring of Cold Iron, four fingers wide, and a thumb thick, just
- like a quoit, but with a snap to it for to snap round the slave's
- neck. They used to do a big trade in slave-rings at the Forge here,
- and ship them to all parts of Old England, packed in oak sawdust.
- But, as I was saying, there was a farmer out of the Weald who had
- bought a woman with a babe in her arms, and he didn't want any
- encumbrances to her driving his beasts home for him.'
-
- 'Beast himself!' said Una, and kicked her bare heel on the gate.
-
- 'So he blamed the auctioneer. "It's none o' my baby," the
- wench puts in. "I took it off a woman in our gang who died on
- Terrible Down yesterday." "I'll take it off to the church then,"
- says the farmer. "Mother Church'll make a monk of it, and we'll
- step along home."
-
- 'It was dusk then. He slipped down to St Pancras' Church, and
- laid the babe at the cold chapel door. I breathed on the back of his
- stooping neck - and - I've heard he never could be warm at any fire
- afterwards. I should have been surprised if he could! Then I
- whipped up the babe, and came flying home here like a bat to his
- belfry.
-
- 'On the dewy break of morning of Thor's own day -just such a
- day as this - I laid the babe outside the Hill here, and the People
- flocked up and wondered at the sight.
-
- '"You've brought him, then?" Sir Huon said, staring like any
- mortal man.
-
- '"Yes, and he's brought his mouth with him, too," I said. The
- babe was crying loud for his breakfast.
-
- '"What is he?" says Sir Huon, when the womenfolk had
- drawn him under to feed him.
-
- '"Full Moon and Morning Star may know," I says. "I don't.
- By what I could make out of him in the moonlight, he's without
- brand or blemish. I'll answer for it that he's born on the far side of
- Cold Iron, for he was born under a shaw on Terrible Down, and
- I've wronged neither man, woman, nor child in taking him, for
- he is the son of a dead slave-woman.
-
- '"All to the good, Robin," Sir Huon said. "He'll be the less
- anxious to leave us. Oh, we'll give him a splendid fortune, and we
- shall act and influence on folk in housen as we have always
- craved." His Lady came up then, and drew him under to watch
- the babe's wonderful doings.'
- 'Who was his Lady?'said Dan.
- 'The Lady Esclairmonde. She had been a woman once, till she
- followed Sir Huon across the fern, as we say. Babies are no special
- treat to me - I've watched too many of them - so I stayed on the
- Hill. Presently I heard hammering down at the Forge there.'Puck
- pointed towards Hobden's cottage. 'It was too early for any
- workmen, but it passed through my mind that the breaking day
- was Thor's own day. A slow north-east wind blew up and set the
- oaks sawing and fretting in a way I remembered; so I slipped over
- to see what I could see.'
-
- 'And what did you see?'
- 'A smith forging something or other out of Cold Iron. When it
- was finished, he weighed it in his hand (his back was towards me),
- and tossed it from him a longish quoit-throw down the valley. I
- saw Cold Iron flash in the sun, but I couldn't quite make out
- where it fell. That didn't trouble me. I knew it would be found
- sooner or later by someone.'
-
- 'How did you know?'Dan went on.
-
- 'Because I knew the Smith that made it,' said Puck quietly.
-
- 'Wayland Smith?' Una suggested. [See 'Weland's Sword' in PUCK
- OF POOK'S HILL.]
-
- 'No. I should have passed the time o' day with Wayland Smith,
- of course. This other was different. So' - Puck made a queer
- crescent in the air with his finger - 'I counted the blades of grass
- under my nose till the wind dropped and he had gone - he and his
- Hammer.'
-
- 'Was it Thor then?' Una murmured under her breath.
-
- 'Who else? It was Thor's own day.' Puck repeated the sign. 'I
- didn't tell Sir Huon or his Lady what I'd seen. Borrow trouble for
- yourself if that's your nature, but don't lend it to your neighbours.
- Moreover, I might have been mistaken about the Smith's
- work. He might have been making things for mere amusement,
- though it wasn't like him, or he might have thrown away an old
- piece of made iron. One can never be sure. So I held my tongue
- and enjoyed the babe. He was a wonderful child - and the People
- of the Hills were so set on him, they wouldn't have believed me.
- He took to me wonderfully. As soon as he could walk he'd putter
- forth with me all about my Hill here. Fern makes soft falling! He
- knew when day broke on earth above, for he'd thump, thump,
- thump, like an old buck-rabbit in a bury, and I'd hear him say
- "Opy!" till some one who knew the Charm let him out, and then
- it would be "Robin! Robin!" all round Robin Hood's barn, as we
- say, till he'd found me.'
-
- 'The dear!' said Una. 'I'd like to have seen him!'
- 'Yes, he was a boy. And when it came to learning his words -
- spells and such-like - he'd sit on the Hill in the long shadows,
- worrying out bits of charms to try on passersby. And when the
- bird flew to him, or the tree bowed to him for pure love's sake
- (like everything else on my Hill), he'd shout, "Robin! Look -see!
- Look, see, Robin!" and sputter out some spell or other that they
- had taught him, all wrong end first, till I hadn't the heart to tell
- him it was his own dear self and not the words that worked the
- wonder. When he got more abreast of his words, and could cast
- spells for sure, as we say, he took more and more notice of things
- and people in the world. People, of course, always drew him, for
- he was mortal all through.
-
- 'Seeing that he was free to move among folk in housen, under
- or over Cold Iron, I used to take him along with me, night-
- walking, where he could watch folk, and I could keep him from
- touching Cold Iron. That wasn't so difficult as it sounds, because
- there are plenty of things besides Cold Iron in housen to catch a
- boy's fancy. He was a handful, though! I shan't forget when I took
- him to Little Lindens - his first night under a roof. The smell of
- the rushlights and the bacon on the beams - they were stuffing a
- feather-bed too, and it was a drizzling warm night - got into his
- head. Before I could stop him -we were hiding in the bakehouse -
- he'd whipped up a storm of wildfire, with flashlights and voices,
- which sent the folk shrieking into the garden, and a girl overset a
- hive there, and - of course he didn't know till then such things
- could touch him - he got badly stung, and came home with his
- face looking like kidney potatoes!
- 'You can imagine how angry Sir Huon and Lady Esclairmonde
- were with poor Robin! They said the Boy was never to be trusted
- with me night-walking any more - and he took about as much
- notice of their order as he did of the bee-stings. Night after night,
- as soon as it was dark, I'd pick up his whistle in the wet fern, and
- off we'd flit together among folk in housen till break of day - he
- asking questions, and I answering according to my knowledge.
- Then we fell into mischief again!'Puck shook till the gate rattled.
-
- 'We came across a man up at Brightling who was beating his
- wife with a bat in the garden. I was just going to toss the man over
- his own woodlump when the Boy jumped the hedge and ran at him.
- Of course the woman took her husband's part, and while the man
- beat him, the woman scratted his face. It wasn't till I danced
- among the cabbages like Brightling Beacon all ablaze that they
- gave up and ran indoors. The Boy's fine green-and-gold clothes
- were torn all to pieces, and he had been welted in twenty places
- with the man's bat, and scratted by the woman's nails to pieces.
- He looked like a Robertsbridge hopper on a Monday morning.
-
- '"Robin," said he, while I was trying to clean him down with a
- bunch of hay, "I don't quite understand folk in housen. I went to
- help that old woman, and she hit me, Robin!"
-
- '"What else did you expect?" I said. "That was the one time
- when you might have worked one of your charms, instead of
- running into three times your weight."
-
- '"I didn't think," he says. "But I caught the man one on the
- head that was as good as any charm. Did you see it work, Robin?"
-
- '"Mind your nose," I said. "Bleed it on a dockleaf - not your
- sleeve, for pity's sake." I knew what the Lady Esclairmonde
- would say.
-
- 'He didn't care. He was as happy as a gipsy with a stolen pony,
- and the front part of his gold coat, all blood and grass stains,
- looked like ancient sacrifices.
-
- 'Of course the People of the Hills laid the blame on me. The
- Boy could do nothing wrong, in their eyes.
-
- '"You are bringing him up to act and influence on folk in
- housen, when you're ready to let him go," I said. "Now he's
- begun to do it, why do you cry shame on me? That's no shame.
- It's his nature drawing him to his kind.
-
- '"But we don't want him to begin that way," the Lady
- Esclairmonde said. "We intend a splendid fortune for him - not
- your flitter-by-night, hedge-jumping, gipsy-work."
-
- '"I don't blame you, Robin," says Sir Huon, "but I do think
- you might look after the Boy more closely."
-
- '"I've kept him away from Cold Iron these sixteen years ," I
- said. "You know as well as I do, the first time he touches Cold
- Iron he'll find his own fortune, in spite of everything you intend
- for him. You owe me something for that."
-
- 'Sir Huon, having been a man, was going to allow me the right
- of it, but the Lady Esclairmonde, being the Mother of all
- Mothers, over-persuaded him.
-
- '"We're very grateful," Sir Huon said, "but we think that just
- for the present you are about too much with him on the Hill."
-
- '"Though you have said it," I said, "I will give you a second chance."
- I did not like being called to account for my doings on my own Hill.
- I wouldn't have stood it even that far except I loved the Boy.
-
- '"No! No!" says the Lady Esclairmonde. "He's never any
- trouble when he's left to me and himself. It's your fault."
-
- '"You have said it," I answered. "Hear me! From now on till
- the Boy has found his fortune, whatever that may be, I vow to
- you all on my Hill, by Oak, and Ash, and Thorn, and by the
- Hammer of Asa Thor" - again Puck made that curious double-
- cut in the air - '"that you may leave me out of all your counts and
- reckonings." Then I went out'- he snapped his fingers -'like the
- puff of a candle, and though they called and cried, they made
- nothing by it. I didn't promise not to keep an eye on the Boy,
- though. I watched him close - close - close!
-
- 'When he found what his people had forced me to do, he gave
- them a piece of his mind, but they all kissed and cried round him,
- and being only a boy, he came over to their way of thinking (I
- don't blame him), and called himself unkind and ungrateful; and
- it all ended in fresh shows and plays, and magics to distract him
- from folk in housen. Dear heart alive! How he used to call and call
- on me, and I couldn't answer, or even let him know that I was
- near!'
-
- 'Not even once?' said Una. 'If he was very lonely?'
- 'No, he couldn't,' said Dan, who had been thinking. 'Didn't
- you swear by the Hammer of Thor that you wouldn't, Puck?'
-
- 'By that Hammer!' was the deep rumbled reply. Then he came
- back to his soft speaking voice. 'And the Boy was lonely, when he
- couldn't see me any more. He began to try to learn all learning (he
- had good teachers), but I saw him lift his eyes from the big black
- books towards folk in housen all the time. He studied song-
- making (good teachers he had too!), but he sang those songs with
- his back toward the Hill, and his face toward folk. I know! I have
- sat and grieved over him grieving within a rabbit's jump of him.
- Then he studied the High, Low, and Middle Magic. He had
- promised the Lady Esclairmonde he would never go near folk in
- housen; so he had to make shows and shadows for his mind to
- chew on.'
- 'What sort of shows?' said Dan.
-
- 'Just boy's Magic as we say. I'll show you some, some time. It
- pleased him for the while, and it didn't hurt any one in particular
- except a few men coming home late from the taverns. But I knew
- what it was a sign of, and I followed him like a weasel follows a
- rabbit. As good a boy as ever lived! I've seen him with Sir Huon
- and the Lady Esclairmonde stepping just as they stepped to avoid
- the track of Cold Iron in a furrow, or walking wide of some old
- ash-tot because a man had left his swop-hook or spade there; and
- all his heart aching to go straightforward among folk in housen all
- the time. Oh, a good boy! They always intended a fine fortune for
- him - but they could never find it in their heart to let him begin.
- I've heard that many warned them, but they wouldn't be warned.
- So it happened as it happened.
-
- 'One hot night I saw the Boy roving about here wrapped in his
- flaming discontents. There was flash on flash against the clouds,
- and rush on rush of shadows down the valley till the shaws were
- full of his hounds giving tongue, and the woodways were packed
- with his knights in armour riding down into the water-mists - all
- his own Magic, of course. Behind them you could see great
- castles lifting slow and splendid on arches of moonshine, with
- maidens waving their hands at the windows, which all turned
- into roaring rivers; and then would come the darkness of his own
- young heart wiping out the whole slateful. But boy's Magic
- doesn't trouble me - or Merlin's either for that matter. I followed
- the Boy by the flashes and the whirling wildfire of his discontent,
- and oh, but I grieved for him! Oh, but I grieved for him! He
- pounded back and forth like a bullock in a strange pasture -
- sometimes alone - sometimes waist-deep among his shadow-
- hounds - sometimes leading his shadow-knights on a hawk-
- winged horse to rescue his shadow-girls. I never guessed he had
- such Magic at his command; but it's often that way with boys.
-
- 'Just when the owl comes home for the second time, I saw Sir
- Huon and the Lady ride down my Hill, where there's not much
- Magic allowed except mine. They were very pleased at the Boy's
- Magic - the valley flared with it - and I heard them settling his
- splendid fortune when they should find it in their hearts to let him
- go to act and influence among folk in housen. Sir Huon was for
- making him a great King somewhere or other, and the Lady was
- for making him a marvellous wise man whom all should praise
- for his skill and kindness. She was very kind-hearted.
-
- 'Of a sudden we saw the flashes of his discontents turned back
- on the clouds, and his shadow-hounds stopped baying.
-
- '"There's Magic fighting Magic over yonder," the Lady
- Esclairmonde cried, reigning up. "Who is against him?"
-
- 'I could have told her, but I did not count it any of my business
- to speak of Asa Thor's comings and goings.
-
- 'How did you know?'said Una.
-
- 'A slow North-East wind blew up, sawing and fretting
- through the oaks in a way I remembered. The wildfire roared up,
- one last time in one sheet, and snuffed out like a rushlight, and a
- bucketful of stinging hail fell. We heard the Boy walking in the
- Long Slip - where I first met you.
-
- '"Here, oh, come here!" said the Lady Esclairmonde, and
- stretched out her arms in the dark.
-
- 'He was coming slowly, but he stumbled in the footpath,
- being, of course, mortal man.
-
- '"Why, what's this?" he said to himself. We three heard him.
-
- '"Hold, lad, hold! 'Ware Cold Iron!" said Sir Huon, and they
- two swept down like nightjars, crying as they rode.
-
- 'I ran at their stirrups, but it was too late. We felt that the Boy
- had touched Cold Iron somewhere in the dark, for the Horses of
- the Hill shied off, and whipped round, snorting.
-
- 'Then I judged it was time for me to show myself in my own
- shape; so I did.
-
- '"Whatever it is," I said, "he has taken hold of it. Now we
- must find out whatever it is that he has taken hold of, for that will
- be his fortune."
-
- '"Come here, Robin," the Boy shouted, as soon as he heard
- my voice. "I don't know what I've hold of."
-
- '"It is in your hands," I called back. "Tell us if it is hard and
- cold, with jewels atop. For that will be a King's Sceptre. "
-
- '"Not by a furrow-long," he said, and stooped and tugged in
- the dark. We heard him.
- '"Has it a handle and two cutting edges?" I called. "For that'll
- be a Knight's Sword."
-
- '"No, it hasn't," he says. "It's neither ploughshare, whittle,
- hook, nor crook, nor aught I've yet seen men handle." By this
- time he was scratting in the dirt to prise it up.
-
- '"Whatever it is, you know who put it there, Robin," said Sir
- Huon to me, "or you would not ask those questions. You should
- have told me as soon as you knew."
-
- '"What could you or I have done against the Smith that made it
- and laid it for him to find?" I said, and I whispered Sir Huon what
- I had seen at the Forge on Thor's Day, when the babe was first
- brought to the Hill.
-
- '"Oh, good-bye, our dreams!" said Sir Huon. "It's neither
- sceptre, sword, nor plough! Maybe yet it's a bookful of learning,
- bound with iron clasps. There's a chance for a splendid fortune in
- that sometimes."
-
- 'But we knew we were only speaking to comfort ourselves,
- and the Lady Esclairmonde, having been a woman, said so.
-
- '"Thur aie! Thor help us!" the Boy called. "It is round,
- without end, Cold Iron, four fingers wide and a thumb thick, and
- there is writing on the breadth of it."
-
- '"Read the writing if you have the learning," I called. The
- darkness had lifted by then, and the owl was out over the fern again.
-
- 'He called back, reading the runes on the iron:
-
- "Few can see
- Further forth
- Than when the child
- Meets the Cold Iron."
-
- And there he stood, in clear starlight, with a new, heavy, shining
- slave-ring round his proud neck.
-
- '"Is this how it goes?" he asked, while the Lady Esclairmonde cried.
-
- '"That is how it goes," I said. He hadn't snapped the catch
- home yet, though.
-
- '"What fortune does it mean for him?" said Sir Huon, while
- the Boy fingered the ring. "You who walk under Cold Iron, you
- must tell us and teach us."
-
- '"Tell I can, but teach I cannot," I said. "The virtue of the Ring
- is only that he must go among folk in housen henceforward,
- doing what they want done, or what he knows they need, all Old
- England over. Never will he be his own master, nor yet ever any
- man's. He will get half he gives, and give twice what he gets, till
- his life's last breath; and if he lays aside his load before he draws
- that last breath, all his work will go for naught."
-
- '"Oh, cruel, wicked Thor!" cried the Lady Esclairmonde.
- "Ah, look see, all of you! The catch is still open! He hasn't locked
- it. He can still take it off. He can still come back. Come back!" She
- went as near as she dared, but she could not lay hands on Cold
- Iron. The Boy could have taken it off, yes. We waited to see if he
- would, but he put up his hand, and the snap locked home.
-
- '"What else could I have done?" said he.
-
- '"Surely, then, you will do," I said. "Morning's coming, and
- if you three have any farewells to make, make them now, for,
- after sunrise, Cold Iron must be your master."
- 'So the three sat down, cheek by wet cheek, telling over their
- farewells till morning light. As good a boy as ever lived, he was.'
-
- 'And what happened to him?' asked Dan.
-
- 'When morning came, Cold Iron was master of him and his
- fortune, and he went to work among folk in housen. Presently he
- came across a maid like-minded with himself, and they were
- wedded, and had bushels of children, as the saying is. Perhaps
- you'll meet some of his breed, this year.'
-
- 'Thank you,' said Una. 'But what did the poor Lady
- Esclairmonde do?'
-
- 'What can you do when Asa Thor lays the Cold Iron in a lad's
- path? She and Sir Huon were comforted to think they had given
- the Boy good store of learning to act and influence on folk in
- housen. For he was a good boy! Isn't it getting on for breakfast-
- time? I'll walk with you a piece.'
-
- When they were well in the centre of the bone-dry fern, Dan
- nudged Una, who stopped and put on a boot as quickly as she could.
- 'Now,' she said, 'you can't get any Oak, Ash, and Thorn leaves
- from here, and' - she balanced wildly on one leg - 'I'm standing
- on Cold Iron. What'll you do if we don't go away?'
-
- 'E-eh? Of all mortal impudence!'said Puck, as Dan, also in one
- boot, grabbed his sister's hand to steady himself. He walked
- round them, shaking with delight. 'You think I can only work
- with a handful of dead leaves? This comes of taking away your
- Doubt and Fear! I'll show you!'
-
-
- A minute later they charged into old Hobden at his simple breakfast
- of cold roast pheasant, shouting that there was a wasps' nest in
- the fern which they had nearly stepped on, and asking him to
- come and smoke it out.
- 'It's too early for wops-nests, an' I don't go diggin' in the Hill,
- not for shillin's,' said the old man placidly. 'You've a thorn in
- your foot, Miss Una. Sit down, and put on your t'other boot.
- You're too old to be caperin' barefoot on an empty stomach. Stay
- it with this chicken o' mine.'
-
-
-
- Cold Iron
-
-
- 'Gold is for the mistress - silver for the maid!
- Copper for the craftsman cunning at his trade.'
- 'Good!' said the Baron, sitting in his hall,
- 'But Iron - Cold Iron - is master of them all!'
-
- So he made rebellion 'gainst the King his liege,
- Camped before his citadel and summoned it to siege -
- 'Nay!' said the cannoneer on the castle wall,
- 'But Iron - Cold Iron - shall be master of you all!'
-
- Woe for the Baron and his knights so strong,
- When the cruel cannon-balls laid 'em all along!
- He was taken prisoner, he was cast in thrall,
- And Iron - Cold Iron - was master of it all!
-
- Yet his King spake kindly (Oh, how kind a Lord!)
- 'What if I release thee now and give thee back thy sword?'
- 'Nay!' said the Baron, 'mock not at my fall,
- For Iron - Cold Iron - is master of men all.'
-
- 'Tears are for the craven, prayers are for the clown -
- Halters for the silly neck that cannot keep a crown.'
- 'As my loss is grievous, so my hope is small,
- For Iron - Cold Iron - must be master of men all!'
-
- Yet his King made answer (few such Kings there be!)
- 'Here is Bread and here is Wine - sit and sup with me.
- Eat and drink in Mary's Name, the whiles I do recall
- How Iron - Cold Iron - can be master of men all!'
-
- He took the Wine and blessed It; He blessed and brake the Bread.
- With His own Hands He served Them, and presently He said:
- 'Look! These Hands they pierced with nails outside my city wall
- Show Iron - Cold Iron - to be master of men all!
-
- 'Wounds are for the desperate, blows are for the strong,
- Balm and oil for weary hearts all cut and bruised with wrong.
- I forgive thy treason - I redeem thy fall -
- For Iron - Cold Iron - must be master of men all!'
-
- 'Crowns are for the valiant - sceptres for the bold!
- Thrones and powers for mighty men who dare to take and hold.'
- 'Nay!' said the Baron, kneeling in his hall,
- 'But Iron - Cold Iron - is master of men all!
- Iron, out of Calvary, is master of men all!'
-
-
-
-
- GLORIANA
-
-
-
- The Two Cousins
-
-
- Valour and Innocence
- Have latterly gone hence
- To certain death by certain shame attended.
- Envy - ah! even to tears! -
- The fortune of their years
- Which, though so few, yet so divinely ended.
-
- Scarce had they lifted up
- Life's full and fiery cup,
- Than they had set it down untouched before them.
- Before their day arose
- They beckoned it to close -
- Close in destruction and confusion o'er them.
-
- They did not stay to ask
- What prize should crown their task,
- Well sure that prize was such as no man strives for;
- But passed into eclipse,
- Her kiss upon their lips -
- Even Belphoebe's, whom they gave their lives for!
-
-
-
- Gloriana
-
-
- Willow Shaw, the little fenced wood where the hop-poles are
- stacked like Indian wigwams, had been given to Dan and Una for
- their very own kingdom when they were quite small. As they
- grew older, they contrived to keep it most particularly private.
- Even Phillips, the gardener, told them every time that he came in
- to take a hop-pole for his beans, and old Hobden would no more
- have thought of setting his rabbit-wires there without leave,
- given fresh each spring, than he would have torn down the calico
- and marking ink notice on the big willow which said: 'Grown-
- ups not allowed in the Kingdom unless brought.'
-
- Now you can understand their indignation when, one blowy
- July afternoon, as they were going up for a potato-roast, they saw
- somebody moving among the trees. They hurled themselves
- over the gate, dropping half the potatoes, and while they were
- picking them up Puck came out of a wigwam.
-
- :Oh, it's you, is it?' said Una. 'We thought it was people.'
- 'I saw you were angry - from your legs,' he answered with a grin.
-
- 'Well, it's our own Kingdom - not counting you, of course.'
-
- 'That's rather why I came. A lady here wants to see you.'
-
- 'What about?' said Dan cautiously.
- 'Oh, just Kingdoms and things. She knows about Kingdoms.'
-
- There was a lady near the fence dressed in a long dark cloak that
- hid everything except her high red-heeled shoes. Her face was
- half covered by a black silk fringed mask, without goggles. And
- yet she did not look in the least as if she motored.
-
- Puck led them up to her and bowed solemnly. Una made the
- best dancing-lesson curtsy she could remember. The lady
- answered with a long, deep, slow, billowy one.
-
- 'Since it seems that you are a Queen of this Kingdom,'she said,
- 'I can do no less than acknowledge your sovereignty.' She turned
- sharply on staring Dan. 'What's in your head, lad? Manners?'
-
- 'I was thinking how wonderfully you did that curtsy,' he answered.
-
- She laughed a rather shrill laugh. 'You're a courtier already. Do
- you know anything of dances, wench - or Queen, must I say?'
-
- 'I've had some lessons, but I can't really dance a bit,' said Una.
-
- 'You should learn, then.' The lady moved forward as though
- she would teach her at once. 'It gives a woman alone among men
- or her enemies time to think how she shall win or - lose. A
- woman can only work in man's play-time. Heigho!'She sat down
- on the bank.
-
- Old Middenboro, the lawn-mower pony, stumped across the
- paddock and hung his sorrowful head over the fence.
-
- 'A pleasant Kingdom,' said the lady, looking round. 'Well
- enclosed. And how does your Majesty govern it? Who is your Minister?'
-
- Una did not quite understand. 'We don't play that,' she said.
-
- 'Play?' The lady threw up her hands and laughed.
-
- 'We have it for our own, together,' Dan explained.
-
- 'And d'you never quarrel, young Burleigh?'
-
- 'Sometimes, but then we don't tell.'
-
- The lady nodded. 'I've no brats of my own, but I understand
- keeping a secret between Queens and their Ministers. Ay de mi!
-
- But with no disrespect to present majesty, methinks your realm'
- small, and therefore likely to be coveted by man and beast. For Is
- example' - she pointed to Middenboro -'yonder old horse, with
- the face of a Spanish friar - does he never break in?'
-
- 'He can't. Old Hobden stops all our gaps for us,' said Una, 'and
- we let Hobden catch rabbits in the Shaw.'
-
- The lady laughed like a man. 'I see! Hobden catches conies -
- rabbits - for himself, and guards your defences for you. Does he
- make a profit out of his coney-catching?'
-
- 'We never ask,' said Una. 'Hobden's a particular friend of
- ours.'
- 'Hoity-toity!' the lady began angrily. Then she laughed. 'But I
- forget. It is your Kingdom. I knew a maid once that had a larger
- one than this to defend, and so long as her men kept the fences
- stopped, she asked 'em no questions either.'
-
- 'Was she trying to grow flowers?'said Una.
-
- 'No, trees - perdurable trees. Her flowers all withered.' The
- lady leaned her head on her hand.
-
- 'They do if you don't look after them. We've got a few. Would
- you like to see? I'll fetch you some.' Una ran off to the rank grass
- in the shade behind the wigwam, and came back with a handful of
- red flowers. 'Aren't they pretty?' she said. 'They're Virginia stock.'
-
- 'Virginia?' said the lady, and lifted them to the fringe of
- her mask.
-
- 'Yes. They come from Virginia. Did your maid ever plant any?'
-
- 'Not herself - but her men adventured all over the earth to
- pluck or to plant flowers for her crown. They judged her worthy
- of them.'
-
- 'And was she?' said Dan cheerfully.
-
- 'Quien sabe? [who knows?] But at least, while her men toiled
- abroad she toiled in England, that they might find a safe home to
- come back to.'
-
- 'And what was she called?'
-
- 'Gloriana - Belphoebe - Elizabeth of England.' Her voice
- changed at each word.
-
- 'You mean Queen Bess?'
-
- The lady bowed her head a little towards Dan. 'You name her
- lightly enough, young Burleigh. What might you know of her?'
- said she.
-
- , Well, I - I've seen the little green shoes she left at Brickwall
- House - down the road, you know. They're in a glass case -
- awfully tiny things.'
-
- 'Oh, Burleigh, Burleigh!' she laughed. 'You are a courtier
- too soon.'
-
- 'But they are,' Dan insisted. 'As little as dolls' shoes. Did you
- really know her well?'
-
- 'Well. She was a - woman. I've been at her Court all my life.
- Yes, I remember when she danced after the banquet at Brickwall.
- They say she danced Philip of Spain out of a brand-new kingdom
- that day. Worth the price of a pair of old shoes - hey?'
-
- She thrust out one foot, and stooped forward to look at its
- broad flashing buckle.
-
- 'You've heard of Philip of Spain - long-suffering Philip,' she
- said, her eyes still on the shining stones. 'Faith, what some men
- will endure at some women's hands passes belief! If I had been a
- man, and a woman had played with me as Elizabeth played with
- Philip, I would have -' She nipped off one of the Virginia stocks
- and held it up between finger and thumb. 'But for all that' - she
- began to strip the leaves one by one - 'they say - and I am
- persuaded - that Philip loved her.' She tossed her head sideways.
-
- 'I don't quite understand,' said Una.
-
- 'The high heavens forbid that you should, wench!' She swept
- the flowers from her lap and stood up in the rush of shadows that
- the wind chased through the wood.
-
- 'I should like to know about the shoes,' said Dan.
-
- 'So ye shall, Burleigh. So ye shall, if ye watch me. 'Twill be as
- good as a play.'
-
- 'We've never been to a play,' said Una.
-
- The lady looked at her and laughed. 'I'll make one for you.
- Watch! You are to imagine that she - Gloriana, Belphoebe, Elizabeth - has
- gone on a progress to Rye to comfort her sad heart
- (maids are often melancholic), and while she halts at Brickwall
- House, the village - what was its name?' She pushed Puck with
- her foot.
-
- 'Norgem,' he croaked, and squatted by the wigwam.
-
- 'Norgem village loyally entertains her with a masque or play,
- and a Latin oration spoken by the parson, for whose false quantities,
- if I'd made 'em in my girlhood, I should have been
- whipped.'
-
- 'You whipped?' said Dan.
-
- 'Soundly, sirrah, soundly! She stomachs the affront to her
- scholarship, makes her grateful, gracious thanks from the teeth
- outwards, thus'- (the lady yawned) -'Oh, a Queen may love her
- subjects in her heart, and yet be dog-wearied of 'em 'in body and
- mind - and so sits down'- her skirts foamed about her as she sat -
- 'to a banquet beneath Brickwall Oak. Here for her sins she is
- waited upon by - What were the young cockerels' names that
- served Gloriana at table?'
-
- 'Frewens, Courthopes, Fullers, Husseys,' Puck began.
-
- She held up her long jewelled hand. 'Spare the rest! They were
- the best blood of Sussex, and by so much the more clumsy in
- handling the dishes and plates. Wherefore' - she looked funnily
- over her shoulder - 'you are to think of Gloriana in a green and
- gold-laced habit, dreadfully expecting that the jostling youths
- behind her would, of pure jealousy or devotion, spatter it with
- sauces and wines. The gown was Philip's gift, too! At this happy
- juncture a Queen's messenger, mounted and mired, spurs up the
- Rye road and delivers her a letter' - she giggled -'a letter from a
- good, simple, frantic Spanish gentleman called - Don Philip.'
-
- 'That wasn't Philip, King of Spain?'Dan asked.
-
- 'Truly, it was. 'Twixt you and me and the bedpost, young
- Burleigh, these kings and queens are very like men and women,
- and I've heard they write each other fond, foolish letters that none
- of their ministers should open.'
-
- 'Did her ministers ever open Queen Elizabeth's letters?' said Una.
-
- 'Faith, yes! But she'd have done as much for theirs, any day.
- You are to think of Gloriana, then (they say she had a pretty
- hand), excusing herself thus to the company - for the Queen's
- time is never her own - and, while the music strikes up, reading
- Philip's letter, as I do.' She drew a real letter from her pocket, and
- held it out almost at arm's length, like the old post-mistress in the
- village when she reads telegrams.
-
- 'Hm! Hm! Hm! Philip writes as ever most lovingly. He says his
- Gloriana is cold, for which reason he burns for her through a fair
- written page.' She turned it with a snap. 'What's here? Philip
- complains that certain of her gentlemen have fought against his
- generals in the Low Countries. He prays her to hang 'em when
- they re-enter her realms. (Hm, that's as may be.) Here's a list of
- burnt shipping slipped between two vows of burning adoration.
- Oh, poor Philip! His admirals at sea - no less than three of 'em -
- have been boarded, sacked, and scuttled on their lawful voyages
- by certain English mariners (gentlemen, he will not call them),
- who are now at large and working more piracies in his American
- ocean, which the Pope gave him. (He and the Pope should guard
- it, then!) Philip hears, but his devout ears will not credit it, that
- Gloriana in some fashion countenances these villains' misdeeds,
- shares in their booty, and - oh, shame! - has even lent them ships
- royal for their sinful thefts. Therefore he requires (which is a
- word Gloriana loves not), requires that she shall hang 'em when
- they return to England, and afterwards shall account to him for all
- the goods and gold they have plundered. A most loving request!
- If Gloriana will not be Philip's bride, she shall be his broker and
- his butcher! Should she still be stiff-necked, he writes - see where
- the pen digged the innocent paper! - that he hath both the means
- and the intention to be revenged on her. Aha! Now we come to
- the Spaniard in his shirt!' (She waved the letter merrily.) 'Listen
- here! Philip will prepare for Gloriana a destruction from the West
- - a destruction from the West - far exceeding that which Pedro de
- Avila wrought upon the Huguenots. And he rests and remains,
- kissing her feet and her hands, her slave, her enemy, or her
- conqueror, as he shall find that she uses him.'
-
- She thrust back the letter under her cloak, and went on acting,
- but in a softer voice. 'All this while - hark to it - the wind blows
- through Brickwall Oak, the music plays, and, with the
- company's eyes upon her, the Queen of England must think what
- this means. She cannot remember the name of Pedro de Avila,
- nor what he did to the Huguenots, nor when, nor where. She can
- only see darkly some dark motion moving in Philip's dark mind,
- for he hath never written before in this fashion. She must smile
- above the letter as though it were good news from her ministers -
- the smile that tires the mouth and the poor heart. What shall she
- do?' Again her voice changed.
-
- 'You are to fancy that the music of a sudden wavers away.
- Chris Hatton, Captain of her bodyguard, quits the table all red
- and ruffled, and Gloriana's virgin ear catches the clash of swords
- at work behind a wall. The mothers of Sussex look round to
- count their chicks - I mean those young gamecocks that waited on
- her. Two dainty youths have stepped aside into Brickwall garden
- with rapier and dagger on a private point of honour. They are
- haled out through the gate, disarmed and glaring - the lively
- image of a brace of young Cupids transformed into pale, panting
- Cains. Ahem! Gloriana beckons awfully - thus! They come up for
- judgement. Their lives and estates lie at her mercy whom they
- have doubly offended, both as Queen and woman. But la! what
- will not foolish young men do for a beautiful maid?'
-
- 'Why? What did she do? What had they done?' said Una.
-
- 'Hsh! You mar the play! Gloriana had guessed the cause of the
- trouble. They were handsome lads. So she frowns a while and
- tells 'em not to be bigger fools than their mothers had made 'em,
- and warns 'em, if they do not kiss and be friends on the instant,
- she'll have Chris Hatton horse and birch 'em in the style of the
- new school at Harrow. (Chris looks sour at that.) Lastly, because
- she needed time to think on Philip's letter burning in her pocket,
- she signifies her pleasure to dance with 'em and teach 'em better
- manners. Whereat the revived company call down Heaven's blessing
- on her gracious head; Chris and the others prepare Brickwall
- House for a dance; and she walks in the clipped garden between
- those two lovely young sinners who are both ready to sink for
- shame. They confess their fault. It appears that midway in the
- banquet the elder - they were cousins - conceived that the Queen
- looked upon him with special favour. The younger, taking the
- look to himself, after some words gives the elder the lie. Hence, as
- she guessed, the duel.'
-
- 'And which had she really looked at?' Dan asked.
-
- 'Neither - except to wish them farther off. She was afraid all the
- while they'd spill dishes on her gown. She tells 'em this, poor
- chicks - and it completes their abasement. When they had grilled
- long enough, she says: "And so you would have fleshed your
- maiden swords for me - for me?" Faith, they would have been at
- it again if she'd egged 'em on! but their swords - oh, prettily they
- said it! - had been drawn for her once or twice already.
-
- '"And where?" says she. "On your hobby-horses before you
- were breeched?"
-
- '"On my own ship," says the elder. "My cousin was vice-
- admiral of our venture in his pinnace. We would not have you
- think of us as brawling children."
-
- '"No, no," says the younger, and flames like a very Tudor
- rose. "At least the Spaniards know us better."
-
- '"Admiral Boy - Vice-Admiral Babe," says Gloriana, "I cry
- your pardon. The heat of these present times ripens childhood to
- age more quickly than I can follow. But we are at peace with
- Spain. Where did you break your Queen's peace?"
- '"On the sea called the Spanish Main, though 'tis no more
- Spanish than my doublet," says the elder. Guess how that
- warmed Gloriana's already melting heart! She would never suffer
- any sea to be called Spanish in her private hearing.
-
- '"And why was I not told? What booty got you, and where
- have you hid it? Disclose," says she. "You stand in some danger
- of the gallows for pirates."
-
- '"The axe, most gracious lady," says the elder, "for we are
- gentle born." He spoke truth, but no woman can brook contradiction.
- "Hoity-toity!" says she, and, but that she remembered that she
- was Queen, she'd have cuffed the pair of 'em. "It shall be
- gallows, hurdle, and dung-cart if I choose."
-
- '"Had our Queen known of our going beforehand, Philip
- might have held her to blame for some small things we did on the
- seas," the younger lisps.
-
- '"As for treasure," says the elder, "we brought back but our
- bare lives. We were wrecked on the Gascons' Graveyard, where
- our sole company for three months was the bleached bones of De
- Avila's men."
-
- 'Gloriana's mind jumped back to Philip's last letter.
-
- '"De Avila that destroyed the Huguenots? What d'you know
- of him?" she says. The music called from the house here, and they
- three turned back between the yews.
-
- '"Simply that De Avila broke in upon a plantation of Frenchmen
- on that coast, and very Spaniardly hung them all for heretics -
- eight hundred or so. The next year Dominique de Gorgues, a
- Gascon, broke in upon De Avila's men, and very justly hung 'em
- all for murderers - five hundred or so. No Christians inhabit there
- now, says the elder lad, "though 'tis a goodly land north of
- Florida. "
-
- '"How far is it from England?" asks prudent Gloriana.
-
- '"With a fair wind, six weeks. They say that Philip will plant it
- again soon." This was the younger, and he looked at her out of
- the corner of his innocent eye.
-
- 'Chris Hatton, fuming, meets and leads her into Brickwall
- Hall, where she dances - thus. A woman can think while she
- dances - can think. I'll show you. Watch!'
-
- She took off her cloak slowly, and stood forth in dove-coloured
- satin, worked over with pearls that trembled like running water
- in the running shadows of the trees. Still talking - more to herself
- than to the children - she swam into a majestical dance of the
- stateliest balancings, the naughtiest wheelings and turnings aside,
- the most dignified sinkings, the gravest risings, all joined
- together by the elaboratest interlacing steps and circles.
- They leaned forward breathlessly to watch the splendid acting.
-
- 'Would a Spaniard,' she began, looking on the ground, 'speak
- of his revenge till his revenge were ripe? No. Yet a man who
- loved a woman might threaten her 'in the hope that his threats
- would make her love him. Such things have been.' She moved
- slowly across a bar of sunlight. 'A destruction from the West may
- signify that Philip means to descend on Ireland. But then my Irish
- spies would have had some warning. The Irish keep no secrets.
- No - it is not Ireland. Now why - why - why' - the red shoes
- clicked and paused -'does Philip name Pedro Melendez de Avila,
- a general in his Americas, unless' - she turned more quickly -
- unless he intends to work his destruction from the Americas? Did
- he say De Avila only to put her off her guard, or for this once has
- his black pen betrayed his black heart? We' - she raised herself to
- her full height - 'England must forestall Master Philip. But not
- openly,'- she sank again -'we cannot fight Spain openly -not yet
- - not yet.' She stepped three paces as though she were pegging
- down some snare with her twinkling shoe-buckles. 'The Queen's
- mad gentlemen may fight Philip's poor admirals where they find
- 'em, but England, Gloriana, Harry's daughter, must keep the
- peace. Perhaps, after all, Philip loves her - as many men and boys
- do. That may help England. Oh, what shall help England?'
-
- She raised her head - the masked head that seemed to have
- nothing to do with the busy feet - and stared straight at the children.
-
- 'I think this is rather creepy,' said Una with a shiver. 'I wish
- she'd stop.'
-
- The lady held out her jewelled hand as though she were taking
- some one else's hand in the Grand Chain.
-
- 'Can a ship go down into the Gascons' Graveyard and wait
- there?' she asked into the air, and passed on rustling.
-
- 'She's pretending to ask one of the cousins, isn't she?' said Dan,
- and Puck nodded.
-
- Back she came in the silent, swaying, ghostly dance. They saw
- she was smiling beneath the mask, and they could hear her
- breathing hard.
-
- 'I cannot lend you any of my ships for the venture; Philip would
- hear of it,' she whispered over her shoulder; 'but as much guns
- and powder as you ask, if you do not ask too -'Her voice shot up
- and she stamped her foot thrice. 'Louder! Louder, the music in the
- gallery! Oh, me, but I have burst out of my shoe!'
-
- She gathered her skirts in each hand, and began a curtsy. 'You
- will go at your own charges,' she whispered straight before her.
- 'Oh, enviable and adorable age of youth!' Her eyes shone through
- the mask-holes. 'But I warn you you'll repent it. Put not your
- trust in princes - or Queens. Philip's ships'll blow you out of
- water. You'll not be frightened? Well, we'll talk on it again, when
- I return from Rye, dear lads.'
-
- The wonderful curtsy ended. She stood up. Nothing stirred on
- her except the rush of the shadows.
-
- 'And so it was finished,' she said to the children. 'Why d'you
- not applaud?'
-
- 'What was finished?' said Una.
-
- 'The dance,' the lady replied offendedly. 'And a pair of
- green shoes.'
-
- 'I don't understand a bit,' said Una.
-
- 'Eh? What did you make of it, young Burleigh?'
-
- 'I'm not quite sure,' Dan began, 'but -'
-
- 'You never can be - with a woman. But -?'
-
- 'But I thought Gloriana meant the cousins to go back to the
- Gascons' Graveyard, wherever that was.'
-
- ''Twas Virginia after-wards. Her plantation of Virginia.'
-
- 'Virginia afterwards, and stop Philip from taking it. Didn't she
- say she'd lend 'em guns?'
-
- 'Right so. But not ships - then.'
-
- 'And I thought you meant they must have told her they'd do it
- off their own bat, without getting her into a row with Philip. Was
- I right?'
-
- 'Near enough for a Minister of the Queen. But remember she
- gave the lads full time to change their minds. She was three long
- days at Rye Royal - knighting of fat Mayors. When she came back
- to Brickwall, they met her a mile down the road, and she could
- feel their eyes burn through her riding-mask. Chris Hatton, poor
- fool, was vexed at it.
-
- '"YOU would not birch them when I gave you the chance,"
- says she to Chris. "Now you must get me half an hour's private
- speech with 'em in Brickwall garden. Eve tempted Adam in a
- garden. Quick, man, or I may repent!"'
-
- 'She was a Queen. Why did she not send for them herself?' said Una.
-
- The lady shook her head. 'That was never her way. I've seen
- her walk to her own mirror by bye-ends, and the woman that
- cannot walk straight there is past praying for. Yet I would have
- you pray for her! What else - what else in England's name could
- she have done?' She lifted her hand to her throat for a moment.
- 'Faith,' she cried, 'I'd forgotten the little green shoes! She left 'em
- at Brickwall - so she did. And I remember she gave the Norgem
- parson - John Withers, was he? - a text for his sermon - "Over
- Edom have I cast out my shoe." Neat, if he'd understood!'
-
- 'I don't understand,' said Una. 'What about the two cousins?'
-
- 'You are as cruel as a woman,' the lady answered. 'I was not to
- blame. I told you I gave 'em time to change their minds. On my
- honour (ay de mi!), she asked no more of 'em at first than to wait a
- while off that coast - the Gascons' Graveyard - to hover a little if
- their ships chanced to pass that way - they had only one tall ship
- and a pinnace - only to watch and bring me word of Philip's
- doings. One must watch Philip always. What a murrain right had
- he to make any plantation there, a hundred leagues north of his
- Spanish Main, and only six weeks from England? By my dread
- father's soul, I tell you he had none - none!' She stamped her red
- foot again, and the two children shrunk back for a second.
-
- 'Nay, nay. You must not turn from me too! She laid it all fairly
- before the lads in Brickwall garden between the yews. I told 'em
- that if Philip sent a fleet (and to make a plantation he could not
- well send less), their poor little cock-boats could not sink it. They
- answered that, with submission, the fight would be their own
- concern. She showed 'em again that there could be only one end
- to it - quick death on the sea, or slow death in Philip's prisons.
- They asked no more than to embrace death for my sake. Many
- men have prayed to me for life. I've refused 'em, and slept none
- the worse after; but when my men, my tall, fantastical young
- men, beseech me on their knees for leave to die for me, it shakes
- me - ah, it shakes me to the marrow of my old bones.'
- Her chest sounded like a board as she hit it.
- 'She showed 'em all. I told 'em that this was no time for open
- war with Spain. If by miracle inconceivable they prevailed against
- Philip's fleet, Philip would hold me accountable. For England's
- sake, to save war, I should e'en be forced (I told 'em so) to give
- him up their young lives. If they failed, and again by some miracle
- escaped Philip's hand, and crept back to England with their bare
- lives, they must lie - oh, I told 'em all - under my sovereign
- displeasure. She could not know them, see them, nor hear their
- names, nor stretch out a finger to save them from the gallows, if
- Philip chose to ask it.
-
- '"Be it the gallows, then," says the elder. (I could have wept,
- but that my face was made for the day.)
-
- '"Either way - any way - this venture is death, which I know
- you fear not. But it is death with assured dishonour," I cried.
-
- '"Yet our Queen will know in her heart what we have done,"
- says the younger.
- '"Sweetheart," I said. "A queen has no heart."
-
- '"But she is a woman, and a woman would not forget," says
- the elder. "We will go!" They knelt at my feet.
-
- '"Nay, dear lads - but here!" I said, and I opened my arms to
- them and I kissed them.
-
- '"Be ruled by me," I said. "We'll hire some ill-featured old
- tarry-breeks of an admiral to watch the Graveyard, and you shall
- come to Court."
-
- '"Hire whom you please," says the elder; "we are ruled by
- you, body and soul"; and the younger, who shook most when I
- kissed 'em, says between his white lips, "I think you have power
- to make a god of a man."
-
- '"Come to Court and be sure of't," I said.
-
- 'They shook their heads and I knew - I knew, that go they
- would. If I had not kissed them - perhaps I might have prevailed.'
-
- 'Then why did you do it?' said Una. 'I don't think you knew
- really what you wanted done.'
-
- 'May it please your Majesty' - the lady bowed her head low -
- 'this Gloriana whom I have represented for your pleasure was a
- woman and a Queen. Remember her when you come to your Kingdom.'
-
- 'But- did the cousins go to the Gascons' Graveyard?' said Dan,
- as Una frowned.
-
- 'They went,' said the lady.
-
- 'Did they ever come back?' Una began; but - 'Did they stop
- King Philip's fleet?' Dan interrupted.
-
- The lady turned to him eagerly.
-
- 'D'you think they did right to go?' she asked.
-
- 'I don't see what else they could have done,' Dan replied, after
- thinking it over.
-
- 'D'you think she did right to send 'em?' The lady's voice rose a
- little.
-
- 'Well,' said Dan, 'I don't see what else she could have done,
- either - do you? How did they stop King Philip from getting Virginia?'
-
- 'There's the sad part of it. They sailed out that autumn from
- Rye Royal, and there never came back so much as a single
- rope-yarn to show what had befallen them. The winds blew, and
- they were not. Does that make you alter your mind, young Burleigh?'
- 'I expect they were drowned, then. Anyhow, Philip didn't
- score, did he?'
-
- 'Gloriana wiped out her score with Philip later. But if Philip
- had won, would you have blamed Gloriana for wasting those
- lads' lives?'
-
- 'Of course not. She was bound to try to stop him.'
-
- The lady coughed. 'You have the root of the matter in you.
- Were I Queen, I'd make you Minister.'
-
- 'We don't play that game,' said Una, who felt that she disliked
- the lady as much as she disliked the noise the high wind made
- tearing through Willow Shaw.
-
- 'Play!' said the lady with a laugh, and threw up her hands
- affectedly. The sunshine caught the jewels on her many rings and
- made them flash till Una's eyes dazzled, and she had to rub them.
- Then she saw Dan on his knees picking up the potatoes they had
- spilled at the gate.
-
- 'There wasn't anybody in the Shaw, after all,' he said. 'Didn't
- you think you saw someone?'
-
- 'I'm most awfully glad there isn't,' said Una. Then they went
- on with the potato-roast.
-
-
- The Looking-Glass
-
- Queen Bess Was Harry's daughter!
-
- The Queen was in her chamber, and she was middling old,
- Her petticoat was satin and her stomacher was gold.
- Backwards and forwards and sideways did she pass,
- Making up her mind to face the cruel looking-glass.
- The cruel looking-glass that will never show a lass
- As comely or as kindly or as young as once she was!
-
- The Queen was in her chamber, a-combing of her hair,
- There came Queen Mary's spirit and it stood behind her chair,
- Singing, 'Backwards and forwards and sideways you may pass,
- But I will stand behind you till you face the looking-glass.
- The cruel looking-glass that will never show a lass
- As lovely or unlucky or as lonely as I was!'
-
- The Queen was in her chamber, a-weeping very sore,
- There came Lord Leicester's spirit and it scratched upon the door,
- Singing, 'Backwards and forwards and sideways may you pass,
- But I will walk beside you till you face the looking-glass.
- The cruel looking-glass that will never show a lass
- As hard and unforgiving or as wicked as you was!'
-
- The Queen was in her chamber; her sins were on her head;
- She looked the spirits up and down and statelily she said:
- 'Backwards and forwards and sideways though I've been,
- Yet I am Harry's daughter and I am England's Queen!'
- And she faced the looking-glass (and whatever else there was),
- And she saw her day was over and she saw her beauty pass
- In the cruel looking-glass that can always hurt a lass
- More hard than any ghost there is or any man there was!
-
-
-
-
- THE WRONG THING
-
-
-
- A Truthful Song
-
-
- THE BRICKLAYER:
-
- I tell this tale, which is strictly true,
- just by way of convincing you
- How very little since things were made
- Things have altered in the building trade.
-
- A year ago, come the middle o' March,
- We was building flats near the Marble Arch,
- When a thin young man with coal-black hair
- Came up to watch us working there.
-
- Now there wasn't a trick in brick or stone
- That this young man hadn't seen or known;
- Nor there wasn't a tool from trowel to maul
- But this young man could use 'em all!
- Then up and spoke the plumbyers bold,
- Which was laying the pipes for the hot and cold:
- 'Since you with us have made so free,
- Will you kindly say what your name might be?'
-
- The young man kindly answered them:
- 'It might be Lot or Methusalem,
- Or it might be Moses (a man I hate),
- Whereas it is Pharaoh surnamed the Great.
-
- 'Your glazing is new and your plumbing's strange,
- But other-wise I perceive no change,
- And in less than a month, if you do as I bid,
- I'd learn you to build me a Pyramid.'
-
- THE SAILOR:
-
- I tell this tale, which is stricter true,
- just by way of convincing you
- How very little since things was made
- Things have altered in the shipwright's trade.
-
- In Blackwall Basin yesterday
- A China barque re-fitting lay,
- When a fat old man with snow-white hair
- Came up to watch us working there.
-
- Now there wasn't a knot which the riggers knew
- But the old man made it - and better too;
- Nor there wasn't a sheet, or a lift, or a brace,
- But the old man knew its lead and place.
-
- Then up and spake the caulkyers bold,
- Which was packing the pump in the after-hold:
- 'Since you with us have made so free,
- Will you kindly tell what your name might be?'
-
- The old man kindly answered them:
- 'it might be Japhet, it might be Shem,
- Or it might be Ham (though his skin was dark),
- Whereas it is Noah, commanding the Ark.
-
- 'Your wheel is new and your pumps are strange,
- But otherwise I perceive no change,
- And in less than a week, if she did not ground,
- I'd sail this hooker the wide world round!'
-
- BOTH: We tell these tales, which are strictest true, etc.
-
-
-
- The Wrong Thing
-
-
- Dan had gone in for building model boats; but after he had filled
- the schoolroom with chips, which he expected Una to clear away,
- they turned him out of doors and he took all his tools up the hill to
- Mr Springett's yard, where he knew he could make as much mess
- as he chose. Old Mr Springett was a builder, contractor, and
- sanitary engineer, and his yard, which opened off the village
- street, was always full of interesting things. At one end of it was a
- long loft, reached by a ladder, where he kept his iron-bound
- scaffold-planks, tins of paints, pulleys, and odds and ends he had
- found in old houses. He would sit here by the hour watching his
- carts as they loaded or unloaded in the yard below, while Dan
- gouged and grunted at the carpenter's bench near the loft
- window. Mr Springett and Dan had always been particular
- friends, for Mr Springett was so old he could remember when
- railways were being made in the southern counties of England,
- and people were allowed to drive dogs in carts.
-
- One hot, still afternoon - the tar-paper on the roof smelt like
- ships - Dan, in his shirt-sleeves, was smoothing down a new
- schooner's bow, and Mr Springett was talking of barns and
- houses he had built. He said he never forgot any stick or stone he
- had ever handled, or any man, woman, or child he had ever met.
- just then he was very proud of the Village Hall at the entrance of
- the village, which he had finished a few weeks before.
-
- 'An' I don't mind tellin' you, Mus' Dan,' he said, 'that the Hall
- will be my last job top of this mortal earth. I didn't make ten
- pounds - no, nor yet five - out o' the whole contrac', but my
- name's lettered on the foundation stone - Ralph Springett, Builder
- - and the stone she's bedded on four foot good concrete. If she
- shifts any time these five hundred years, I'll sure-ly turn in my
- grave. I told the Lunnon architec' so when he come down to
- oversee my work.'
-
- 'What did he say?' Dan was sandpapering the schooner's port bow.
-
- 'Nothing. The Hall ain't more than one of his small jobs for
- him, but 'tain't small to me, an' my name is cut and lettered,
- frontin' the village street, I do hope an' pray, for time everlastin'.
- You'll want the little round file for that holler in her bow. Who's
- there?' Mr Springett turned stiffly in his chair.
-
- A long pile of scaffold-planks ran down the centre of the loft.
- Dan looked, and saw Hal o' the Draft's touzled head beyond
- them. [See 'Hal o' the Draft' in PUCK OF POOK'S HILL.]
-
- 'Be you the builder of the Village Hall?' he asked of Mr Springett.
-
- 'I be,' was the answer. 'But if you want a job -'
-
- Hal laughed. 'No, faith!'he said. 'Only the Hall is as good and
- honest a piece of work as I've ever run a rule over. So, being born
- hereabouts, and being reckoned a master among masons, and
- accepted as a master mason, I made bold to pay my brotherly
- respects to the builder.'
-
- 'Aa - um!' Mr Springett looked important. 'I be a bit rusty, but
- I'll try ye!'
-
- He asked Hal several curious questions, and the answers must
- have pleased him, for he invited Hal to sit down. Hal moved up,
- always keeping behind the pile of planks so that only his head
- showed, and sat down on a trestle in the dark corner at the back of
- Mr Springett's desk. He took no notice of Dan, but talked at once
- to Mr Springett about bricks, and cement, and lead and glass, and
- after a while Dan went on with his work. He knew Mr Springett
- was pleased, because he tugged his white sandy beard, and
- smoked his pipe in short puffs. The two men seemed to agree
- about everything, but when grown-ups agree they interrupt each
- other almost as much as if they were quarrelling. Hal said
- something about workmen.
-
- 'Why, that's what I always say,' Mr Springett cried. 'A man
- who can only do one thing, he's but next-above-fool to the man
- that can't do nothin'. That's where the Unions make their mistake.'
-
- 'My thought to the very dot.' Dan heard Hal slap his tight-
- hosed leg. 'I've suffered 'in my time from these same Guilds -
- Unions, d'you call 'em? All their precious talk of the mysteries of
- their trades - why, what does it come to?'
-
- 'Nothin'! You've justabout hit it,' said Mr Springett, and
- rammed his hot tobacco with his thumb.
-
- 'Take the art of wood-carving,'Hal went on. He reached across
- the planks, grabbed a wooden mallet, and moved his other hand
- as though he wanted something. Mr Springett without a word
- passed him one of Dan's broad chisels. 'Ah! Wood-carving, for
- example. If you can cut wood and have a fair draft of what ye
- mean to do, a' Heaven's name take chisel and maul and let drive at
- it, say I! You'll soon find all the mystery, forsooth, of wood-
- carving under your proper hand!' Whack, came the mallet on the
- chisel, and a sliver of wood curled up in front of it. Mr Springett
- watched like an old raven.
-
- 'All art is one, man - one!' said Hal between whacks; 'and to
- wait on another man to finish out -'
-
- 'To finish out your work ain't no sense,' Mr Springett cut in.
- 'That's what I'm always sayin' to the boy here.' He nodded
- towards Dan. 'That's what I said when I put the new wheel into
- Brewster's Mill in Eighteen hundred Seventy-two. I reckoned I
- was millwright enough for the job 'thout bringin' a man from
- Lunnon. An' besides, dividin' work eats up profits, no bounds.'
-
- Hal laughed his beautiful deep laugh, and Mr Springett joined
- in till Dan laughed too.
-
- 'You handle your tools, I can see,' said Mr Springett. 'I reckon,
- if you're any way like me, you've found yourself hindered by
- those - Guilds, did you call 'em? - Unions, we say.'
-
- 'You may say so!' Hal pointed to a white scar on his cheekbone.
- 'This is a remembrance from the Master watching-Foreman of Masons
- on Magdalen Tower, because, please you, I dared to carve stone without
- their leave. They said a stone had slipped from the cornice by accident.'
-
- 'I know them accidents. There's no way to disprove 'em. An'
- stones ain't the only things that slip,' Mr Springett grunted. Hal
- went on:
-
- 'I've seen a scaffold-plank keckle and shoot a too-clever workman
- thirty foot on to the cold chancel floor below. And a rope can
- break -'
- 'Yes, natural as nature; an' lime'll fly up in a man's eyes without
- any breath o' wind sometimes,' said Mr Springett. 'But who's to
- show 'twasn't a accident?'
-
- 'Who do these things?' Dan asked, and straightened his back at
- the bench as he turned the schooner end-for-end in the vice to get
- at her counter.
-
- 'Them which don't wish other men to work no better nor
- quicker than they do,' growled Mr Springett. 'Don't pinch her so
- hard in the vice, Mus' Dan. Put a piece o' rag in the jaws, or you'll
- bruise her. More than that'- he turned towards Hal -'if a man has
- his private spite laid up against you, the Unions give him his
- excuse for workin' it off.'
-
- 'Well I know it,'said Hal.
-
- 'They never let you go, them spiteful ones. I knowed a plasterer
- in Eighteen hundred Sixty-one - down to the wells. He was a
- Frenchy - a bad enemy he was.'
- 'I had mine too. He was an Italian, called Benedetto. I met him
- first at Oxford on Magdalen Tower when I was learning my trade
- -or trades, I should say. A bad enemy he was, as you say, but he
- came to be my singular good friend,' said Hal as he put down the
- mallet and settled himself comfortably.
-
- 'What might his trade have been - plastering' Mr Springett asked.
-
- 'Plastering of a sort. He worked in stucco - fresco we call it.
- Made pictures on plaster. Not but what he had a fine sweep of the
- hand in drawing. He'd take the long sides of a cloister, trowel on
- his stuff, and roll out his great all-abroad pictures of saints and
- croppy-topped trees quick as a webster unrolling cloth almost.
- Oh, Benedetto could draw, but 'a was a little-minded man,
- professing to be full of secrets of colour or plaster - common
- tricks, all of 'em - and his one single talk was how Tom, Dick or
- Harry had stole this or t'other secret art from him.'
-
- 'I know that sort,' said Mr Springett. 'There's no keeping peace
- or making peace with such. An' they're mostly born an' bone idle.'
-
- 'True. Even his fellow-countrymen laughed at his jealousy. We
- two came to loggerheads early on Magdalen Tower. I was a
- youngster then. Maybe I spoke my mind about his work.'
-
- 'You shouldn't never do that.' Mr Springett shook his head.
- 'That sort lay it up against you.'
-
- 'True enough. This Benedetto did most specially. Body o' me,
- the man lived to hate me! But I always kept my eyes open on a
- plank or a scaffold. I was mighty glad to be shut of him when he
- quarrelled with his Guild foreman, and went off, nose in air, and
- paints under his arm. But' - Hal leaned forward -'if you hate a
- man or a man hates you -'
-
- 'I know. You're everlastin' running acrost him,' Mr Springett
- interrupted. 'Excuse me, sir.' He leaned out of the window, and
- shouted to a carter who was loading a cart with bricks.
-
- 'Ain't you no more sense than to heap 'em up that way?' he
- said. 'Take an' throw a hundred of 'em off. It's more than the
- team can compass. Throw 'em off, I tell you, and make another
- trip for what's left over. Excuse me, sir. You was sayin'-'
-
- 'I was saying that before the end of the year I went to Bury to
- strengthen the lead-work in the great Abbey east window there.'
-
- 'Now that's just one of the things I've never done. But I mind
- there was a cheap excursion to Chichester in Eighteen hundred
- Seventy-nine, an' I went an' watched 'em leadin' a won'erful fine
- window in Chichester Cathedral. I stayed watchin' till 'twas time
- for us to go back. Dunno as I had two drinks p'raps, all that day.'
-
- Hal smiled. 'At Bury, then, sure enough, I met my enemy
- Benedetto. He had painted a picture in plaster on the south wall of
- the Refectory - a noble place for a noble thing - a picture of
- Jonah.'
-
- 'Ah! Jonah an' his whale. I've never been as far as Bury. You've
- worked about a lot,' said Mr Springett, with his eyes on the
- carter below.
-
- 'No. Not the whale. This was a picture of Jonah and the
- pompion that withered. But all that Benedetto had shown was a
- peevish grey-beard huggled up in angle-edged drapery beneath a
- pompion on a wooden trellis. This last, being a dead thing, he'd
- drawn it as 'twere to the life. But fierce old Jonah, bared in the
- sun, angry even to death that his cold prophecy was disproven -
- Jonah, ashamed, and already hearing the children of Nineveh
- running to mock him - ah, that was what Benedetto had not
- drawn!'
-
- 'He better ha' stuck to his whale, then,' said Mr Springett.
-
- 'He'd ha' done no better with that. He draws the damp cloth off
- the picture, an' shows it to me. I was a craftsman too, d'ye see?'
-
- '"Tis good," I said, "but it goes no deeper than the plaster."
-
- '"What?" he said in a whisper.
-
- '"Be thy own judge, Benedetto," I answered. "Does it go
- deeper than the plaster?"
-
- 'He reeled against a piece of dry wall. "No," he says, "and I
- know it. I could not hate thee more than I have done these five
- years, but if I live, I will try, Hal. I will try." Then he goes away. I
- pitied him, but I had spoken truth. His picture went no deeper
- than the plaster.'
-
- 'Ah!' said Mr Springett, who had turned quite red. 'You was
- talkin' so fast I didn't understand what you was drivin' at. I've
- seen men - good workmen they was - try to do more than they
- could do, and - and they couldn't compass it. They knowed it,
- and it nigh broke their hearts like. You was in your right, o'
- course, sir, to say what you thought o' his work; but if you'll
- excuse me, was you in your duty?'
-
- 'I was wrong to say it,' Hal replied. 'God forgive me - I was
- young! He was workman enough himself to know where he
- failed. But it all came evens in the long run. By the same token,
- did ye ever hear o' one Torrigiano - Torrisany we called him?'
-
- 'I can't say I ever did. Was he a Frenchy like?'
-
- 'No, a hectoring, hard-mouthed, long-sworded Italian
- builder, as vain as a peacock and as strong as a bull, but, mark
- you, a master workman. More than that - he could get his best
- work out of the worst men.'
-
- 'Which it's a gift. I had a foreman-bricklayer like him once,'
- said Mr Springett. 'He used to prod 'em in the back like with a
- pointing-trowel, and they did wonders.'
-
- I've seen our Torrisany lay a 'prentice down with one buffet
- and raise him with another - to make a mason of him. I worked
- under him at building a chapel in London - a chapel and a tomb
- for the King.'
-
- 'I never knew kings went to chapel much,' said Mr Springett.
- 'But I always hold with a man - don't care who he be - seein'
- about his own grave before he dies. 'Tidn't the sort of thing to
- leave to your family after the will's read. I reckon 'twas a fine vault?'
-
- 'None finer in England. This Torrigiano had the contract for it,
- as you'd say. He picked master craftsmen from all parts -
- England, France, Italy, the Low Countries - no odds to him so
- long as they knew their work, and he drove them like - like pigs at
- Brightling Fair. He called us English all pigs. We suffered it
- because he was a master in his craft. If he misliked any work that a
- man had done, with his own great hands he'd rive it out, and tear
- it down before us all. "Ah, you pig - you English pig!" he'd
- scream in the dumb wretch's face. "You answer me? You look at
- me? You think at me? Come out with me into the cloisters. I will
- teach you carving myself. I will gild you all over!" But when his
- passion had blown out, he'd slip his arm round the man's neck,
- and impart knowledge worth gold. 'Twould have done your
- heart good, Mus' Springett, to see the two hundred of us
- masons, jewellers, carvers, gilders, iron-workers and the rest - all
- toiling like cock-angels, and this mad Italian hornet fleeing one to
- next up and down the chapel. Done your heart good, it would!'
-
- 'I believe you,' said Mr Springett. 'In Eighteen hundred Fifty-four,
- I mind, the railway was bein' made into Hastin's. There was
- two thousand navvies on it - all young - all strong - an' I was one
- of 'em. Oh, dearie me! Excuse me, sir, but was your enemy
- workin' with you?'
-
- 'Benedetto? Be sure he was. He followed me like a lover. He
- painted pictures on the chapel ceiling - slung from a chair.
- Torrigiano made us promise not to fight till the work should be
- finished. We were both master craftsmen, do ye see, and he
- needed us. None the less, I never went aloft to carve 'thout testing
- all my ropes and knots each morning. We were never far from
- each other. Benedetto 'ud sharpen his knife on his sole while he
- waited for his plaster to dry - wheet, wheet, wheet. I'd hear it where
- I hung chipping round a pillar-head, and we'd nod to each other
- friendly-like. Oh, he was a craftsman, was Benedetto, but his
- hate spoiled his eye and his hand. I mind the night I had finished
- the models for the bronze saints round the tomb; Torrigiano
- embraced me before all the chapel, and bade me to supper. I met
- Benedetto when I came out. He was slavering in the porch Like a
- mad dog.'
-
- 'Workin' himself up to it?' said Mr Springett. 'Did he have it in
- at ye that night?'
-
- 'No, no. That time he kept his oath to Torrigiano. But I pitied
- him. Eh, well! Now I come to my own follies. I had never
- thought too little of myself; but after Torrisany had put his arm
- round my neck, I - I' - Hal broke into a laugh - 'I lay there was not
- much odds 'twixt me and a cock-sparrow in his pride.'
-
- 'I was pretty middlin' young once on a time,' said Mr Springett.
-
- 'Then ye know that a man can't drink and dice and dress fine,
- and keep company above his station, but his work suffers for it,
- Mus' Springett.'
-
- 'I never held much with dressin' up, but - you're right! The
- worst mistakes I ever made they was made of a Monday
- morning,' Mr Springett answered. 'We've all been one sort of
- fool or t'other. Mus' Dan, Mus' Dan, take the smallest gouge, or
- you'll be spluttin' her stem works clean out. Can't ye see the grain
- of the wood don't favour a chisel?'
-
- 'I'll spare you some of my follies. But there was a man called
- Brygandyne - Bob Brygandyne - Clerk of the King's Ships, a
- little, smooth, bustling atomy, as clever as a woman to get work
- done for nothin' - a won'erful smooth-tongued pleader. He made
- much o' me, and asked me to draft him out a drawing, a piece of
- carved and gilt scroll-work for the bows of one of the King's
- Ships - the SOVEREIGN was her name.'
-
- 'Was she a man-of-war?'asked Dan.
-
- 'She was a warship, and a woman called Catherine of Castile
- desired the King to give her the ship for a pleasure-ship of her own.
- I did not know at the time, but she'd been at Bob to get this
- scroll-work done and fitted that the King might see it. I made him
- the picture, in an hour, all of a heat after supper - one great
- heaving play of dolphins and a Neptune or so reining in webby-
- footed sea-horses, and Arion with his harp high atop of them. It
- was twenty-three foot long, and maybe nine foot deep - painted
- and gilt.'
-
- It must ha' justabout looked fine,' said Mr Springett.
-
- 'That's the curiosity of it. 'Twas bad - rank bad. In my conceit I
- must needs show it to Torrigiano, in the chapel. He straddles his
- legs, hunches his knife behind him, and whistles like a storm-cock
- through a sleet-shower. Benedetto was behind him. We were
- never far apart, I've told you.
-
- '"That is pig's work," says our Master. "Swine's work. You
- make any more such things, even after your fine Court suppers,
- and you shall be sent away."
-
- 'Benedetto licks his lips like a cat. "It is so bad then, Master?"
- he says. "What a pity!"
-
- '"Yes," says Torrigiano. "Scarcely you could do things so bad.
- I will condescend to show."
-
- 'He talks to me then and there. No shouting, no swearing (it
- was too bad for that); but good, memorable counsel, bitten in
- slowly. Then he sets me to draft out a pair of iron gates, to take, as
- he said, the taste of my naughty dolphins out of my mouth. Iron's
- sweet stuff if you don't torture her, and hammered work is all
- pure, truthful line, with a reason and a support for every curve
- and bar of it. A week at that settled my stomach handsomely, and
- the Master let me put the work through the smithy, where I
- sweated out more of my foolish pride.'
-
- 'Good stuff is good iron,' said Mr Springett. 'I done a pair of
- lodge gates once in Eighteen hundred Sixty-three.'
-
- 'Oh, I forgot to say that Bob Brygandyne whipped away my
- draft of the ship's scroll-work, and would not give it back to me
- to re-draw. He said 'twould do well enough. Howsoever, my
- lawful work kept me too busied to remember him. Body o' me,
- but I worked that winter upon the gates and the bronzes for the
- tomb as I'd never worked before! I was leaner than a lath, but I
- lived - I lived then!' Hal looked at Mr Springett with his wise,
- crinkled-up eyes, and the old man smiled back.
-
- 'Ouch!' Dan cried. He had been hollowing out the schooner's
- after-deck, the little gouge had slipped and gashed the ball of his
- left thumb, - an ugly, triangular tear.
-
- 'That came of not steadying your wrist,' said Hal calmly.
- 'Don't bleed over the wood. Do your work with your heart's
- blood, but no need to let it show.' He rose and peered into a
- corner of the loft.
-
- Mr Springett had risen too, and swept down a ball of cobwebs
- from a rafter.
-
- 'Clap that on,' was all he said, 'and put your handkerchief atop.
- 'Twill cake over in a minute. It don't hurt now, do it?'
-
- 'No,' said Dan indignantly. 'You know it has happened lots of
- times. I'll tie it up myself. Go on, sir.'
-
- 'And it'll happen hundreds of times more,' said Hal with a
- friendly nod as he sat down again. But he did not go on till Dan's
- hand was tied up properly. Then he said:
-
- 'One dark December day - too dark to judge colour - we was
- all sitting and talking round the fires in the chapel (you heard good
- talk there), when Bob Brygandyne bustles in and - "Hal, you're
- sent for," he squeals. I was at Torrigiano's feet on a pile of
- put-locks, as I might be here, toasting a herring on my knife's
- point. 'Twas the one English thing our Master liked - salt herring.
-
- '"I'm busy, about my art," I calls.
-
-
- '"Art?" says Bob. "What's Art compared to your scroll-work
- for the SOVEREIGN? Come."
-
- '"Be sure your sins will find you out," says Torrigiano. "Go
- with him and see." As I followed Bob out I was aware of Benedetto,
- like a black spot when the eyes are tired, sliddering up
- behind me.
-
- 'Bob hurries through the streets in the raw fog, slips into a
- doorway, up stairs, along passages, and at last thrusts me into a
- little cold room vilely hung with Flemish tapestries, and no
- furnishing except a table and my draft of the SOVEREIGN's scrollwork.
- Here he leaves me. Presently comes in a dark, long-nosed
- man in a fur cap.
-
- '"Master Harry Dawe?" said he.
-
- '"The same," I says. "Where a plague has Bob Brygandyne gone?"
-
- 'His thin eyebrows surged up in a piece and come down again
- in a stiff bar. "He went to the King," he says.
-
- '"All one. Where's your pleasure with me?" I says, shivering,
- for it was mortal cold.
-
- 'He lays his hand flat on my draft. "Master Dawe," he says,
- "do you know the present price of gold leaf for all this wicked
- gilding of yours?"
-
- 'By that I guessed he was some cheese-paring clerk or other of
- the King's Ships, so I gave him the price. I forget it now, but it
- worked out to thirty pounds - carved, gilt, and fitted in place.
-
- '"Thirty pounds!" he said, as though I had pulled a tooth of
- him. "You talk as though thirty pounds was to be had for the
- asking. None the less," he says, "your draft's a fine piece of work."
-
- 'I'd been looking at it ever since I came in, and 'twas viler even
- than I judged it at first. My eye and hand had been purified the
- past months, d'ye see, by my iron work.
-
- '"I could do it better now," I said. The more I studied my
- squabby Neptunes the less I liked 'em; and Arion was a pure
- flaming shame atop of the unbalanced dolphins.
-
- '"I doubt it will be fresh expense to draft it again," he says.
-
- '"Bob never paid me for the first draft. I lay he'll never pay me
- for the second. 'Twill cost the King nothing if I re-draw it," I says.
-
- '"There's a woman wishes it to be done quickly," he says.
- "We'll stick to your first drawing, Master Dawe. But thirty
- pounds is thirty pounds. You must make it less.'
-
- 'And all the while the faults in my draft fair leaped out and hit
- me between the eyes. At any cost, I thinks to myself, I must get it
- back and re-draft it. He grunts at me impatiently, and a splendid
- thought comes to me, which shall save me. By the same token,
- It was quite honest.'
-
- 'They ain't always,' says Mr Springett. 'How did you get out of it?'
-
- 'By the truth. I says to Master Fur Cap, as I might to you here, I
- says, "I'll tell you something, since you seem a knowledgeable
- man. Is the SOVEREIGN to lie in Thames river all her days, or will she
- take the high seas?"
-
- '"Oh," he says quickly, "the King keeps no cats that don't
- catch mice. She must sail the seas, Master Dawe. She'll be hired to
- merchants for the trade. She'll be out in all shapes o' weathers.
- Does that make any odds?"
- '"Why, then," says I, "the first heavy sea she sticks her nose
- into'll claw off half that scroll-work, and the next will finish it. If
- she's meant for a pleasure-ship give me my draft again, and I'll
- porture you a pretty, light piece of scroll-work, good cheap. If
- she's meant for the open- sea, pitch the draft into the fire. She can
- never carry that weight on her bows.
-
- 'He looks at me squintlings and plucks his under-lip.
-
- '"Is this your honest, unswayed opinion?" he says.
-
- '"Body o' me! Ask about!" I says. "Any seaman could tell you
- 'tis true. I'm advising you against my own profit, but why I do so
- is my own concern.
-
- '"Not altogether ", he says. "It's some of mine. You've saved
- me thirty pounds, Master Dawe, and you've given me good
- arguments to use against a willful woman that wants my fine new
- ship for her own toy. We'll not have any scroll-work." His face
- shined with pure joy.
-
- '"Then see that the thirty pounds you've saved on it are
- honestly paid the King," I says, "and keep clear o' women-folk."
- I gathered up my draft and crumpled it under my arm. "If that's
- all you need of me I'll be gone," I says. "I'm pressed."
-
- 'He turns him round and fumbles in a corner. "Too pressed to
- be made a knight, Sir Harry?" he says, and comes at me smiling,
- with three-quarters of a rusty sword.
-
- 'I pledge you my Mark I never guessed it was the King till that
- moment. I kneeled, and he tapped me on the shoulder.
-
- '"Rise up, Sir Harry Dawe," he says, and, in the same breath,
- "I'm pressed, too," and slips through the tapestries, leaving me
- like a stuck calf.
-
- 'It come over me, in a bitter wave like, that here was I, a master
- craftsman, who had worked no bounds, soul or body, to make
- the King's tomb and chapel a triumph and a glory for all time; and
- here, d'ye see, I was made knight, not for anything I'd slaved
- over, or given my heart and guts to, but expressedly because I'd
- saved him thirty pounds and a tongue-lashing from Catherine of
- Castille - she that had asked for the ship. That thought shrivelled
- me with insides while I was folding away my draft. On the heels
- of it - maybe you'll see why - I began to grin to myself. I thought
- of the earnest simplicity of the man - the King, I should say -
- because I'd saved him the money; his smile as though he'd won
- half France! I thought of my own silly pride and foolish expectations
- that some day he'd honour me as a master craftsman. I
- thought of the broken-tipped sword he'd found behind the
- hangings; the dirt of the cold room, and his cold eye, wrapped up
- in his own concerns, scarcely resting on me. Then I remembered
- the solemn chapel roof and the bronzes about the stately tomb
- he'd lie in, and - d'ye see? - the unreason of it all - the mad high
- humour of it all - took hold on me till I sat me down on a dark
- stair-head in a passage, and laughed till I could laugh no more.
- What else could I have done?
-
- 'I never heard his feet behind me - he always walked like a cat -
- but his arm slid round my neck, pulling me back where I sat, till
- my head lay on his chest, and his left hand held the knife plumb
- over my heart - Benedetto! Even so I laughed - the fit was beyond
- my holding - laughed while he ground his teeth in my ear. He was
- stark crazed for the time.
-
- '"Laugh," he said. "Finish the laughter. I'll not cut ye short.
- Tell me now" - he wrenched at my head - "why the King chose
- to honour you, - you - you - you lickspittle Englishman? I am full
- of patience now. I have waited so long." Then he was off at score
- about his Jonah in Bury Refectory, and what I'd said of it, and his
- pictures in the chapel which all men praised and none looked at
- twice (as if that was my fault!), and a whole parcel of words and
- looks treasured up against me through years.
-
- '"Ease off your arm a little," I said. "I cannot die by choking,
- for I am just dubbed knight, Benedetto."
-
- '"Tell me, and I'll confess ye, Sir Harry Dawe, Knight.
- There's a long night before ye. Tell," says he.
-
- 'So I told him - his chin on my crown - told him all; told it as
- well and with as many words as I have ever told a tale at a supper
- with Torrigiano. I knew Benedetto would understand, for, mad
- or sad, he was a craftsman. I believed it to be the last tale I'd ever
- tell top of mortal earth, and I would not put out bad work before I
- left the Lodge. All art's one art, as I said. I bore Benedetto no
- malice. My spirits, d'ye see, were catched up in a high, solemn
- exaltation, and I saw all earth's vanities foreshortened and little,
- laid out below me like a town from a cathedral scaffolding. I told
- him what befell, and what I thought of it. I gave him the King's
- very voice at "Master Dawe, you've saved me thirty pounds!";
- his peevish grunt while he looked for the sword; and how the
- badger-eyed figures of Glory and Victory leered at me from the
- Flemish hangings. Body o' me, 'twas a fine, noble tale, and, as I
- thought, my last work on earth.
-
- '"That is how I was honoured by the King," I said. "They'll
- hang ye for killing me, Benedetto. And, since you've killed in the
- King's Palace, they'll draw and quarter you; but you're too mad
- to care. Grant me, though, ye never heard a better tale."
- 'He said nothing, but I felt him shake. My head on his chest
- shook; his right arm fell away, his left dropped the knife, and he
- leaned with both hands on my shoulder - shaking - shaking! I
- turned me round. No need to put my foot on his knife. The man
- was speechless with laughter - honest craftsman's mirth. The first
- time I'd ever seen him laugh. You know the mirth that cuts off the
- very breath, while ye stamp and snatch at the short ribs? That was
- Benedetto's case.
-
- 'When he began to roar and bay and whoop in the passage, I
- haled him out into the street, and there we leaned against the wall
- and had it all over again - waving our hands and wagging our
- heads - till the watch came to know if we were drunk.
-
- 'Benedetto says to 'em, solemn as an owl: "You have saved me
- thirty pounds, Mus' Dawe," and off he pealed. In some sort we
- were mad-drunk - I because dear life had been given back to me,
- and he because, as he said afterwards, because the old crust of
- hatred round his heart was broke up and carried away by
- laughter. His very face had changed too.
-
- '"Hal," he cries, "I forgive thee. Forgive me too, Hal. Oh,
- you English, you English! Did it gall thee, Hal, to see the rust on
- the dirty sword? Tell me again, Hal, how the King grunted with
- joy. Oh, let us tell the Master."
-
- 'So we reeled back to the chapel, arms round each other's
- necks, and when we could speak - he thought we'd been fighting -
- we told the Master. Yes, we told Torrigiano, and he laughed till
- he rolled on the new cold pavement. Then he knocked our heads together.
-
- '"Ah, you English!" he cried. "You are more than pigs. You
- are English. Now you are well punished for your dirty fishes. Put
- the draft in the fire, and never do so any more. You are a fool, Hal,
- and you are a fool, Benedetto, but I need your works to please this
- beautiful English King."
-
- '"And I meant to kill Hal," says Benedetto. "Master, I meant
- to kill him because the English King had made him a knight."
-
- '"Ah!" says the Master, shaking his finger. "Benedetto, if you
- had killed my Hal, I should have killed you - in the cloister. But
- you are a craftsman too, so I should have killed you like a
- craftsman, very, very slowly - in an hour, if I could spare the
- time!" That was Torrigiano - the Master!'
-
- Mr Springett sat quite still for some time after Hal had finished.
- Then he turned dark red; then he rocked to and fro; then he
- coughed and wheezed till the tears ran down his face. Dan knew
- by this that he was laughing, but it surprised Hal at first.
-
- 'Excuse me, sir,' said Mr Springett, 'but I was thinkin' of some
- stables I built for a gentleman in Eighteen hundred Seventy-four.
- They was stables in blue brick - very particular work. Dunno as
- they weren't the best job which ever I'd done. But the gentleman's
- lady - she'd come from Lunnon, new married - she was all
- for buildin' what was called a haw-haw - what you an' me 'ud call
- a dik - right acrost his park. A middlin' big job which I'd have had
- the contract of, for she spoke to me in the library about it. But I
- told her there was a line o' springs just where she wanted to dig
- her ditch, an' she'd flood the park if she went on.'
-
- 'Were there any springs at all?' said Hal.
-
- 'Bound to be springs everywhere if you dig deep enough, ain't
- there? But what I said about the springs put her out o' conceit o'
- diggin' haw-haws, an' she took an' built a white tile dairy instead.
- But when I sent in my last bill for the stables, the gentleman he
- paid it 'thout even lookin' at it, and I hadn't forgotten nothin', I do
- assure you. More than that, he slips two five-pound notes into my
- hand in the library, an'"Ralph, he says - he allers called me by
- name - "Ralph," he says, "you've saved me a heap of expense an'
- trouble this autumn." I didn't say nothin', o' course. I knowed he
- didn't want any haws-haws digged acrost his park no more'n I
- did, but I never said nothin'. No more he didn't say nothin' about
- my blue-brick stables, which was really the best an' honestest
- piece o' work I'd done in quite a while. He give me ten pounds for
- savin' him a hem of a deal o' trouble at home. I reckon things are
- pretty much alike, all times, in all places.'
-
- Hal and he laughed together. Dan couldn't quite understand
- what they thought so funny, and went on with his work for some
- time without speaking.
-
- When he looked up, Mr Springett, alone, was wiping his eyes
- with his green-and-yellow pocket-handkerchief.
-
- 'Bless me, Mus' Dan, I've been asleep,' he said. 'An' I've
- dreamed a dream which has made me laugh - laugh as I ain't
- laughed in a long day. I can't remember what 'twas all about, but
- they do say that when old men take to laughin' in their sleep,
- they're middlin' ripe for the next world. Have you been workin'
- honest, Mus' Dan?'
-
- 'Ra-ather,' said Dan, unclamping the schooner from the vice.
- 'And look how I've cut myself with the small gouge.'
-
- 'Ye-es. You want a lump o' cobwebs to that,' said Mr
- Springett. 'Oh, I see you've put it on already. That's right, Mus'
- Dan.'
-
-
-
- King Henry VII and the Shipwrights
-
- Harry our King in England from London town is gone,
- And comen to Hamull on the Hoke in the countie of Suthampton.
- For there lay the MARY OF THE TOWER, his ship of war so strong,
- And he would discover, certaynely, if his shipwrights did him wrong.
-
- He told not none of his setting forth, nor yet where he would go
- (But only my Lord of Arundel), and meanly did he show,
- In an old jerkin and patched hose that no man might him mark;
- With his frieze hood and cloak about, he looked like any clerk.
- He was at Hamull on the Hoke about the hour of the tide,
- And saw the MARY haled into dock, the winter to abide,
- With all her tackle and habiliments which are the King his own;
- But then ran on his false shipwrights and stripped her to the bone.
-
- They heaved the main-mast overboard, that was of a trusty tree,
- And they wrote down it was spent and lost by force of weather at sea.
- But they sawen it into planks and strakes as far as it might go,
- To maken beds for their own wives and little children also.
-
- There was a knave called Slingawai, he crope beneath the deck,
- Crying: 'Good felawes, come and see! The ship is nigh a wreck!
- For the storm that took our tall main-mast, it blew so fierce and fell,
- Alack! it hath taken the kettles and pans, and this brass pott as well!'
-
- With that he set the pott on his head and hied him up the hatch,
- While all the shipwrights ran below to find what they might snatch;
- All except Bob Brygandyne and he was a yeoman good,
- He caught Slingawai round the waist and threw him on to the mud.
-
- 'I have taken plank and rope and nail, without the King his leave,
- After the custom of Portesmouth, but I will not suffer a thief.
- Nay, never lift up thy hand at me! There's no clean hands in the trade.
- Steal in measure,' quo' Brygandyne. 'There's measure in all things made!'
-
- 'Gramercy, yeoman!' said our King. 'Thy counsel liketh me.'
- And he pulled a whistle out of his neck and whistled whistles three.
- Then came my Lord of Arundel pricking across the down,
- And behind him the Mayor and Burgesses of merry Suthampton town.
-
- They drew the naughty shipwrights up, with the kettles in their hands,
- And bound them round the forecastle to wait the King's commands.
- But 'Since ye have made your beds,' said the King, 'ye needs must lie
- thereon.
- For the sake of your wives and little ones - felawes, get you gone!'
-
- When they had beaten Slingawai, out of his own lips,
- Our King appointed Brygandyne to be Clerk of all his ships.
- 'Nay, never lift up thy hands to me - there's no clean hands in the trade.
- But steal in measure,'said Harry our King. 'There's measure in all things
- made!'
-
- God speed the 'Mary of the Tower,' the 'Sovereign' and 'Grace Dieu,'
- The 'Sweepstakes' and the 'Mary Fortune,' and the 'Henry of Bristol' too!
- All tall ships that sail on the sea, or in our harbours stand,
- That they may keep measure with Harry our King and peace in Engeland!
-
-
-
- MARKLAKE WITCHES
-
-
-
- The Way Through the Woods
-
-
- They shut the road through the woods
- Seventy years ago.
- Weather and rain have undone it again,
- And now you would never know
- There was once a road through the woods
- Before they planted the trees.
- It is underneath the coppice and heath,
- And the thin anemones.
- Only the keeper sees
- That, where the ring-dove broods,
- And the badgers roll at ease,
- There was once a road through the woods.
-
- Yet, if you enter the woods
- Of a summer evening late,
- When the night-air cools on the trout-ringed pools
- Where the otter whistles his mate
- (They fear not men in the woods
- Because they see so few),
- You will hear the beat of a horse's feet
- And the swish of a skirt in the dew,
- Steadily cantering through
- The misty solitudes,
- As though they perfectly knew
- The old lost road through the woods ...
- But there is no road through the woods!
-
-
-
- Marklake Witches
-
-
- When Dan took up boat-building, Una coaxed Mrs Vincey, the
- farmer's wife at Little Lindens, to teach her to milk. Mrs Vincey
- milks in the pasture in summer, which is different from milking
- in the shed, because the cows are not tied up, and until they know
- you they will not stand still. After three weeks Una could milk
- Red Cow or Kitty Shorthorn quite dry, without her wrists
- aching, and then she allowed Dan to look. But milking did not
- amuse him, and it was pleasanter for Una to be alone in the quiet
- pastures with quiet-spoken Mrs Vincey. So, evening after evening,
- she slipped across to Little Lindens, took her stool from the
- fern-clump beside the fallen oak, and went to work, her pail
- between her knees, and her head pressed hard into the cow's
- flank. As often as not, Mrs Vincey would be milking cross Pansy
- at the other end of the pasture, and would not come near till it was
- time to strain and pour off.
-
- Once, in the middle of a milking, Kitty Shorthorn boxed Una's
- ear with her tail.
-
- 'You old pig!' said Una, nearly crying, for a cow's tail can hurt.
-
- 'Why didn't you tie it down, child?' said a voice behind her.
-
- 'I meant to, but the flies are so bad I let her off - and this is what
- she's done!' Una looked round, expecting Puck, and saw a curly-
- haired girl, not much taller than herself, but older, dressed in a
- curious high-waisted, lavender-coloured riding-habit, with a
- high hunched collar and a deep cape and a belt fastened with a steel
- clasp. She wore a yellow velvet cap and tan gauntlets, and carried
- a real hunting-crop. Her cheeks were pale except for two pretty
- pink patches in the middle, and she talked with little gasps at the
- end of her sentences, as though she had been running.
-
- 'You don't milk so badly, child,' she said, and when she smiled
- her teeth showed small and even and pearly.
-
- 'Can you milk?' Una asked, and then flushed, for she heard
- Puck's chuckle.
-
- He stepped out of the fern and sat down, holding Kitty Short-
- horn's tail. 'There isn't much,' he said, 'that Miss Philadelphia
- doesn't know about milk - or, for that matter, butter and eggs.
- She's a great housewife.'
-
- 'Oh,' said Una. 'I'm sorry I can't shake hands. Mine are all
- milky; but Mrs Vincey is going to teach me butter-making this summer.'
- 'Ah! I'm going to London this summer,' the girl said, 'to my
- aunt in Bloomsbury.' She coughed as she began to hum, '"Oh,
- what a town! What a wonderful metropolis!"
-
- 'You've got a cold,' said Una.
-
- 'No. Only my stupid cough. But it's vastly better than it was
- last winter. It will disappear in London air. Every one says so.
- D'you like doctors, child?'
-
- 'I don't know any,' Una replied. 'But I'm sure I shouldn't.'
-
- 'Think yourself lucky, child. I beg your pardon,' the girl
- laughed, for Una frowned.
-
- 'I'm not a child, and my name's Una,'she said.
-
- 'Mine's Philadelphia. But everybody except Rene calls me Phil.
- I'm Squire Bucksteed's daughter - over at Marklake yonder.' She
- jerked her little round chin towards the south behind Dallington.
- 'Sure-ly you know Marklake?'
-
- 'We went a picnic to Marklake Green once,' said Una. 'It's
- awfully pretty. I like all those funny little roads that don't lead
- anywhere.'
-
- 'They lead over our land,' said Philadelphia stiffly, 'and the
- coach road is only four miles away. One can go anywhere from
- the Green. I went to the Assize Ball at Lewes last year.' She spun
- round and took a few dancing steps, but stopped with her hand to
- her side.
-
- 'It gives me a stitch,' she explained. 'No odds. 'Twill go away
- in London air. That's the latest French step, child. Rene taught it
- me. D'you hate the French, chi - Una?'
-
- 'Well, I hate French, of course, but I don't mind Ma'm'selle.
- She's rather decent. Is Rene your French governess?'
-
- Philadelphia laughed till she caught her breath again.
-
- 'Oh no! Rene's a French prisoner - on parole. That means he's
- promised not to escape till he has been properly exchanged for an
- Englishman. He's only a doctor, so I hope they won't think him
- worth exchanging. My uncle captured him last year in the
- FERDINAND privateer, off Belle Isle, and he cured my uncle of a
- r-r-raging toothache. Of course, after that we couldn't let him lie
- among the common French prisoners at Rye, and so he stays with
- us. He's of very old family - a Breton, which is nearly next door
- to being a true Briton, my father says - and he wears his hair
- clubbed - not powdered. Much more becoming, don't you think?'
-
- 'I don't know what you're -' Una began, but Puck, the other
- side of the pail, winked, and she went on with her milking.
- 'He's going to be a great French physician when the war is over.
- He makes me bobbins for my lace-pillow now - he's very clever
- with his hands; but he'd doctor our people on the Green if they
- would let him. Only our Doctor - Doctor Break - says he's an
- emp - or imp something - worse than imposter. But my Nurse
- says -'
-
- 'Nurse! You're ever so old. What have you got a nurse for?'
- Una finished milking, and turned round on her stool as Kitty
- Shorthorn grazed off.
-
- 'Because I can't get rid of her. Old Cissie nursed my mother,
- and she says she'll nurse me till she dies. The idea! She never lets
- me alone. She thinks I'm delicate. She has grown infirm in her
- understanding, you know. Mad - quite mad, poor Cissie!'
-
-
- 'Really mad?' said Una. 'Or just silly?'
-
- 'Crazy, I should say - from the things she does. Her devotion to
- me is terribly embarrassing. You know I have all the keys of the
- Hall except the brewery and the tenants' kitchen. I give out all
- stores and the linen and plate.'
-
- 'How jolly! I love store-rooms and giving out things.'
-
- Ah, it's a great responsibility, you'll find, when you come to
- my age. Last year Dad said I was fatiguing myself with my duties,
- and he actually wanted me to give up the keys to old Amoore, our
- housekeeper. I wouldn't. I hate her. I said, "No, sir. I am Mistress
- of Marklake Hall just as long as I live, because I'm never going to
- be married, and I shall give out stores and linen till I die!"
-
- And what did your father say?'
-
- 'Oh, I threatened to pin a dishclout to his coat-tail. He ran
- away. Every one's afraid of Dad, except me.' Philadelphia
- stamped her foot. 'The idea! If I can't make my own father happy
- in his own house, I'd like to meet the woman that can, and - and -
- I'd have the living hide off her!'
-
- She cut with her long-thonged whip. It cracked like a pistol-
- shot across the still pasture. Kitty Shorthorn threw up her head
- and trotted away.
-
- 'I beg your pardon,' Philadelphia said; 'but it makes me furious.
- Don't you hate those ridiculous old quizzes with their feathers
- and fronts, who come to dinner and call you "child" in your own
- chair at your own table?'
-
- 'I don't always come to dinner , said Una, 'but I hate being
- called "child." Please tell me about store-rooms and giving out things.'
-
- Ah, it's a great responsibility - particularly with that old cat
- Amoore looking at the lists over your shoulder. And such a
- shocking thing happened last summer! Poor crazy Cissie, my
- Nurse that I was telling you of, she took three solid silver
- tablespoons.'
-
- 'Took! But isn't that stealing?' Una cried.
-
- 'Hsh!' said Philadelphia, looking round at Puck. 'All I say is she
- took them without my leave. I made it right afterwards. So, as
- Dad says - and he's a magistrate-, it wasn't a legal offence; it was
- only compounding a felony.
-
- 'It sounds awful,' said Una.
-
- 'It was. My dear, I was furious! I had had the keys for ten
- months, and I'd never lost anything before. I said nothing at first,
- because a big house offers so many chances of things being
- mislaid, and coming to hand later. "Fetching up in the lee-
- scuppers," my uncle calls it. But next week I spoke to old Cissie
- about it when she was doing my hair at night, and she said I
- wasn't to worry my heart for trifles!'
-
- 'Isn't it like 'em?' Una burst out. 'They see you're worried over
-
-
- something that really matters, and they say, "Don't worry"; as if
- that did any good!'
-
- 'I quite agree with you, my dear; quite agree with you! I told
- Ciss the spoons were solid silver, and worth forty shillings, so if
- the thief were found, he'd be tried for his life.'
- 'Hanged, do you mean?'Una said.
-
- 'They ought to be; but Dad says no jury will hang a man
- nowadays for a forty-shilling theft. They transport 'em into penal
- servitude at the uttermost ends of the earth beyond the seas, for
- the term of their natural life. I told Cissie that, and I saw her
- tremble in my mirror. Then she cried, and caught hold of my
- knees, and I couldn't for my life understand what it was all about,
- - she cried so. Can you guess, my dear, what that poor crazy thing
- had done? It was midnight before I pieced it together. She had
- given the spoons to Jerry Gamm, the Witchmaster on the Green,
- so that he might put a charm on me! Me!'
-
- 'Put a charm on you? Why?'
-
- 'That's what I asked; and then I saw how mad poor Cissie was!
- You know this stupid little cough of mine? It will disappear as
- soon as I go to London. She was troubled about that, and about
- my being so thin, and she told me Jerry had promised her, if she
- would bring him three silver spoons, that he'd charm my cough
- away and make me plump - "flesh up," she said. I couldn't help
- laughing; but it was a terrible night! I had to put Cissie into my
- own bed, and stroke her hand till she cried herself to sleep. What
- else could I have done? When she woke, and I coughed - I suppose
- I can cough in my own room if I please - she said that she'd killed
- me, and asked me to have her hanged at Lewes sooner than send
- her to the uttermost ends of the earth away from me.'
-
- 'How awful! What did you do, Phil?'
-
- 'Do? I rode off at five in the morning to talk to Master Jerry,
- with a new lash on my whip. Oh, I was furious! Witchmaster or no
- Witchmaster, I meant to -'
-
- Ah! what's a Witchmaster?'
-
- 'A master of witches, of course. I don't believe there are
- witches; but people say every village has a few, and Jerry was the
- master of all ours at Marklake. He has been a smuggler, and a
- man-of-war's man, and now he pretends to be a carpenter and
- joiner - he can make almost anything - but he really is a white
- wizard. He cures people by herbs and charms. He can cure them
- after Doctor Break has given them up, and that's why Doctor
- Break hates him so. He used to make me toy carts, and charm off
- my warts when I was a child.' Philadelphia spread out her hands
- with the delicate shiny little nails. 'It isn't counted lucky to cross
- him. He has his ways of getting even with you, they say. But I
- wasn't afraid of Jerry! I saw him working in his garden, and I
- leaned out of my saddle and double-thonged him between the
- shoulders, over the hedge. Well, my dear, for the first time since
- Dad gave him to me, my Troubadour (I wish you could see the
- sweet creature!) shied across the road, and I spilled out into the
- hedge-top. Most undignified! Jerry pulled me through to his side
- and brushed the leaves off me. I was horribly pricked, but I didn't
- care. "Now, Jerry," I said, "I'm going to take the hide off you
- first, and send you to Lewes afterwards. You well know why."
-
- '"Oh!" he said, and he sat down among his bee-hives. "Then I
- reckon you've come about old Cissie's business, my dear." "I
- reckon I justabout have," I said. "Stand away from these hives. I
- can't get at you there." "That's why I be where I be," he said. "If
- you'll excuse me, Miss Phil, I don't hold with bein' flogged
- before breakfast, at my time o' life." He's a huge big man, but he
- looked so comical squatting among the hives that - I know I
- oughtn't to - I laughed, and he laughed. I always laugh at the
- wrong time. But I soon recovered my dignity, and I said, "Then
- give me back what you made poor Cissie steal!"
-
- '"Your pore Cissie," he said. "She's a hatful o' trouble. But
- you shall have 'em, Miss Phil. They're all ready put by for you."
- And, would you believe it, the old sinner pulled my three silver
- spoons out of his dirty pocket, and polished them on his cuff.
- "Here they be," he says, and he gave them to me, just as cool as
- though I'd come to have my warts charmed. That's the worst of
- people having known you when you were young. But I preserved
- my composure. "Jerry," I said, "what in the world are we to do?
- If you'd been caught with these things on you, you'd have been
- hanged."
-
- '"I know it," he said. "But they're yours now."
-
- '"But you made my Cissie steal them," I said.
-
- '"That I didn't," he said. "Your Cissie, she was pickin' at me
- an' tarrifyin' me all the long day an' every day for weeks, to put a
- charm on you, Miss Phil, an' take away your little spitty cough."
-
- '"Yes. I knew that, Jerry, and to make me flesh-up!" I said.
- "I'm much obliged to you, but I'm not one of your pigs!"
-
- '"Ah! I reckon she've been talking to you, then," he said.
- "Yes, she give me no peace, and bein' tarrified - for I don't hold
- with old women - I laid a task on her which I thought 'ud silence
- her. I never reckoned the old scrattle 'ud risk her neckbone at
- Lewes Assizes for your sake, Miss Phil. But she did. She up an'
- stole, I tell ye, as cheerful as a tinker. You might ha' knocked me
- down with any one of them liddle spoons when she brung 'em in
- her apron."
-
- '"Do you mean to say, then, that you did it to try my poor
- Cissie?" I screamed at him.
-
- '"What else for, dearie?" he said. "I don't stand in need of
- hedge-stealings. I'm a freeholder, with money in the bank; and
- now I won't trust women no more! Silly old besom! I do beleft
- she'd ha' stole the Squire's big fob-watch, if I'd required her."
-
- '"Then you're a wicked, wicked old man," I said, and I was so
- angry that I couldn't help crying, and of course that made me cough.
-
- 'Jerry was in a fearful taking. He picked me up and carried me
- into his cottage - it's full of foreign curiosities - and he got me
- something to eat and drink, and he said he'd be hanged by the
- neck any day if it pleased me. He said he'd even tell old Cissie he
- was sorry. That's a great comedown for a Witchmaster, you
- know.
-
- 'I was ashamed of myself for being so silly, and I dabbed my
- eyes and said, "The least you can do now is to give poor Ciss
- some sort of a charm for me."
-
- '"Yes, that's only fair dealings," he said. "You know the
- names of the Twelve Apostles, dearie? You say them names, one
- by one, before your open window, rain or storm, wet or shine,
- five times a day fasting. But mind you, 'twixt every name you
- draw in your breath through your nose, right down to your
- pretty liddle toes, as long and as deep as you can, and let it out
- slow through your pretty liddle mouth. There's virtue for your
- cough in those names spoke that way. And I'll give you something
- you can see, moreover. Here's a stick of maple, which is the
- warmest tree in the wood."'
- 'That's true,' Una interrupted. 'You can feel it almost as warm
- as yourself when you touch it.'
-
- '"It's cut one inch long for your every year," Jerry said.
- "That's sixteen inches. You set it in your window so that it holds
- up the sash, and thus you keep it, rain or shine, or wet or fine, day
- and night. I've said words over it which will have virtue on your
- complaints."
-
- "I haven't any complaints, Jerry," I said. "It's only to please
- Cissie."
-
- '"I know that as well as you do, dearie," he said. And - and
- that was all that came of my going to give him a flogging. I
- wonder whether he made poor Troubadour shy when I lashed at
- him? Jerry has his ways of getting even with people.'
-
- 'I wonder,' said Una. 'Well, did you try the charm? Did it work?'
-
- 'What nonsense! I told Rene about it, of course, because he's a
- doctor. He's going to be a most famous doctor. That's why our
- doctor hates him. Rene said, "Oho! Your Master Gamm, he is
- worth knowing," and he put up his eyebrows -like this. He made
- joke of it all. He can see my window from the carpenter's shed,
- where he works, and if ever the maple stick fell down, he
- pretended to be in a fearful taking till I propped the window up
- again. He used to ask me whether I had said my Apostles
- properly, and how I took my deep breaths. Oh yes, and the next
- day, though he had been there ever so many times before, he put
- on his new hat and paid Jerry Gamm a visit of state - as a
- fellow-physician. Jerry never guessed Rene was making fun of
- him, and so he told Rene about the sick people in the village, and
- how he cured them with herbs after Doctor Break had given them
- up. Jerry could talk smugglers' French, of course, and I had
- taught Rene plenty of English, if only he wasn't so shy. They
- called each other Monsieur Gamm and Mosheur Lanark, just like
- gentlemen. I suppose it amused poor Rene. He hasn't much to do,
- except to fiddle about in the carpenter's shop. He's like all the
- French prisoners - always making knickknacks; and Jerry had a
- little lathe at his cottage, and so - and so - Rene took to being with
- Jerry much more than I approved of. The Hall is so big and empty
- when Dad's away, and I will not sit with old Amoore -she talks so
- horridly about every one - specially about Rene.
-
- 'I was rude to Rene, I'm afraid; but I was properly served out
- for it. One always is. You see, Dad went down to Hastings to pay
- his respects to the General who commanded the brigade there,
- and to bring him to the Hall afterwards. Dad told me he was a
- very brave soldier from India - he was Colonel of Dad's Regiment,
- the Thirty-third Foot, after Dad left the Army, and then he
- changed his name from Wesley to Wellesley, or else the other way
- about; and Dad said I was to get out all the silver for him, and I
- knew that meant a big dinner. So I sent down to the sea for early
- mackerel, and had such a morning in the kitchen and the store-
- rooms. Old Amoore nearly cried.
-
- 'However, my dear, I made all my preparations in ample time,
- but the fish didn't arrive - it never does - and I wanted Rene to
- ride to Pevensey and bring it himself. He had gone over to Jerry,
- of course, as he always used, unless I requested his presence
- beforehand. I can't send for Rene every time I want him. He
- should be there. Now, don't you ever do what I did, child,
- because it's in the highest degree unladylike; but - but one of our
- Woods runs up to Jerry's garden, and if you climb - it's ungenteel,
- but I can climb like a kitten -there's an old hollow oak just above
- the pigsty where you can hear and see everything below. Truthfully,
- I only went to tell Rene about the mackerel, but I saw him
- and Jerry sitting on the seat playing with wooden toy trumpets.
- So I slipped into the hollow, and choked down my cough, and
- listened. Rene had never shown me any of these trumpets.'
-
- 'Trumpets? Aren't you too old for trumpets?' said Una.
-
- 'They weren't real trumpets, because Jerry opened his short-
- collar, and Rene put one end of his trumpet against Jerry's chest,
- and put his ear to the other. Then Jerry put his trumpet against
- Rene's chest, and listened while Rene breathed and coughed. I
- was afraid I would cough too.
-
- '"This hollywood one is the best," said Jerry. "'Tis won'erful
- like hearin' a man's soul whisperin' in his innards; but unless I've a
- buzzin' in my ears, Mosheur Lanark, you make much about the
- same kind o' noises as old Gaffer Macklin - but not quite so loud
- as young Copper. It sounds like breakers on a reef - a long way
- off. Comprenny?"
-
- '"Perfectly," said Rene. "I drive on the breakers. But before I
- strike, I shall save hundreds, thousands, millions perhaps, by my
- little trumpets. Now tell me what sounds the old Gaffer Macklin
- have made in his chest, and what the young Copper also."
-
- 'Jerry talked for nearly a quarter of an hour about sick people in
- the village, while Rene asked questions. Then he sighed, and said,
- "You explain very well, Monsieur Gamm, but if only I had your
- opportunities to listen for myself! Do you think these poor people
- would let me listen to them through my trumpet - for a little
- money? No?" - Rene's as poor as a church mouse.
-
- '"They'd kill you, Mosheur. It's all I can do to coax 'em to
- abide it, and I'm Jerry Gamm," said Jerry. He's very proud of his
- attainments.
-
- '"Then these poor people are alarmed - No?" said Rene.
-
- '"They've had it in at me for some time back because o' my
- tryin' your trumpets on their sick; and I reckon by the talk at the
- alehouse they won't stand much more. Tom Dunch an' some of
- his kidney was drinkin' themselves riot-ripe when I passed along
- after noon. Charms an' mutterin's an' bits o' red wool an' black
- hens is in the way o' nature to these fools, Mosheur; but anything
- likely to do 'em real service is devil's work by their estimation. If I
- was you, I'd go home before they come." Jerry spoke quite
- quietly, and Rene shrugged his shoulders.
-
- '"I am prisoner on parole, Monsieur Gamm," he said. "I have
- no home."
-
- 'Now that was unkind of Rene. He's often told me that he
- looked on England as his home. I suppose it's French politeness.
-
- '"Then we'll talk o' something that matters," said Jerry. "Not
- to name no names, Mosheur Lanark, what might be your own
- opinion o' some one who ain't old Gaffer Macklin nor young
- Copper? Is that person better or worse?"
-
- '"Better - for time that is," said Rene. He meant for the time
- being, but I never could teach him some phrases.
-
- '"I thought so too," said Jerry. "But how about time to come?"
-
- Rene shook his head, and then he blew his nose. You don't
- know how odd a man looks blowing his nose when you are
- sitting directly above him.
-
- I've thought that too," said Jerry. He rumbled so deep I
- could scarcely catch. "It don't make much odds to me, because
- I'm old. But you're young, Mosheur- you're young," and he put
- his hand on Rene's knee, and Rene covered it with his hand. I
- didn't know they were such friends.
-
- '"Thank you, mon ami," said Rene. "I am much oblige. Let us
- return to our trumpet-making. But I forget" - he stood up - "it
- appears that you receive this afternoon!"
-
- 'You can't see into Gamm's Lane from the oak, but the gate
- opened, and fat little Doctor Break stumped in, mopping his
- head, and half-a-dozen of our people following him, very drunk.
-
- 'You ought to have seen Rene bow; he does it beautifully.
-
- '"A word with you, Laennec," said Doctor Break. "Jerry has
- been practising some devilry or other on these poor wretches, and
- they've asked me to be arbiter."
-
- '"Whatever that means, I reckon it's safer than asking you to
- be doctor," said Jerry, and Tom Dunch, one of our carters, laughed.
-
- '"That ain't right feeling of you, Tom," Jerry said, "seeing
- how clever Doctor Break put away your thorn in the flesh last
- winter." Tom's wife had died at Christmas, though Doctor
- Break bled her twice a week. Doctor Break danced with rage.
-
- '"This is all beside the mark," he said. "These good people are
- willing to testify that you've been impudently prying into God's
- secrets by means of some papistical contrivance which this
- person" - he pointed to poor Rene - "has furnished you with.
- Why, here are the things themselves!" Rene was holding a
- trumpet in his hand.
-
- 'Then all the men talked at once. They said old Gaffer Macklin
- was dying from stitches in his side where Jerry had put the
- trumpet - they called it the devil's ear-piece; and they said it left
- round red witch-marks on people's skins, and dried up their
- lights, and made 'em spit blood, and threw 'em into sweats.
- Terrible things they said. You never heard such a noise. I took
- advantage of it to cough.
-
- 'Rene and Jerry were standing with their backs to the pigsty.
- Jerry fumbled in his big flap pockets and fished up a pair of pistols.
- You ought to have seen the men give back when he cocked his.
- He passed one to Rene.
-
- '"Wait! Wait!" said Rene. "I will explain to the doctor if he
- permits." He waved a trumpet at him, and the men at the gate
- shouted, "Don't touch it, Doctor! Don't lay a hand to the thing."
-
- '"Come, come!" said Rene. "You are not so big fool as you
- pretend. No?"
-
- 'Doctor Break backed toward the gate, watching Jerry's pistol,
- and Rene followed him with his trumpet, like a nurse trying to
- amuse a child, and put the ridiculous thing to his ear to show how
- it was used, and talked of la Gloire, and l'Humanite, and la Science,
- while Doctor Break watched jerry's pistol and swore. I nearly
- laughed aloud.
-
- '"Now listen! Now listen!" said Rene. "This will be moneys
- in your pockets, my dear confrere. You will become rich."
-
- 'Then Doctor Break said something about adventurers who
- could not earn an honest living in their own country creeping into
- decent houses and taking advantage of gentlemen's confidence to
- enrich themselves by base intrigues.
-
- 'Rene dropped his absurd trumpet and made one of his best
- bows. I knew he was angry from the way he rolled his "r's."
-
- '"Ver-r-ry good," said he. "For that I shall have much
- pleasure to kill you now and here. Monsieur Gamm," - another
- bow to Jerry - "you will please lend him your pistol, or he shall
- have mine. I give you my word I know not which is best; and if he
- will choose a second from his friends over there" - another bow
- to our drunken yokels at the gate - "we will commence."
-
- '"That's fair enough," said Jerry. "Tom Dunch, you owe it to
- the Doctor to be his second. Place your man."
- '"No," said Tom. "No mixin' in gentry's quarrels for me."
- And he shook his head and went out, and the others followed him.
-
- '"Hold on," said Jerry. "You've forgot what you set out to do
- up at the alehouse just now. You was goin' to search me for
- witch-marks; you was goin' to duck me in the pond; you was
- goin' to drag all my bits o' sticks out o' my little cottage here.
- What's the matter with you? Wouldn't you like to be with your
- old woman tonight, Tom?"
-
- 'But they didn't even look back, much less come. They ran to
- the village alehouse like hares.
-
- '"No matter for these canaille," said Rene, buttoning up his
- coat so as not to show any linen. All gentlemen do that before a
- duel, Dad says - and he's been out five times. "You shall be his
- second, Monsieur Gamm. Give him the pistol."
-
- 'Doctor Break took it as if it was red-hot, but he said that if
- Rene resigned his pretensions in certain quarters he would pass
- over the matter. Rene bowed deeper than ever.
-
- '"As for that," he said, "if you were not the ignorant which
- you are, you would have known long ago that the subject of your
- remarks is not for any living man."
-
- 'I don't know what the subject of his remarks might have been,
- but he spoke in a simply dreadful voice, my dear, and Doctor
- Break turned quite white, and said Rene was a liar; and then Rene
- caught him by the throat, and choked him black.
-
- 'Well, my dear, as if this wasn't deliciously exciting enough,
- just exactly at that minute I heard a strange voice on the other side
- of the hedge say, "What's this? What's this, Bucksteed?" and
- there was my father and Sir Arthur Wesley on horseback in the
- lane; and there was Rene kneeling on Doctor Break, and there was
- I up in the oak, listening with all my ears.
-
- 'I must have leaned forward too much, and the voice gave me
- such a start that I slipped. I had only time to make one jump on to
- the pigsty roof - another, before the tiles broke, on to the pigsty
- wall - and then I bounced down into the garden, just behind Jerry,
- with my hair full of bark. Imagine the situation!'
-
- 'Oh, I can!' Una laughed till she nearly fell off the stool.
-
- 'Dad said, "Phil - a - del - phia!" and Sir Arthur Wesley said,
- "Good Ged" and Jerry put his foot on the pistol Rene had
- dropped. But Rene was splendid. He never even looked at me. He
- began to untwist Doctor Break's neckcloth as fast as he'd twisted
- it, and asked him if he felt better.
-
- '"What's happened? What's happened?" said Dad.
-
- '"A fit!" said Rene. "I fear my confrere has had a fit. Do not be
- alarmed. He recovers himself. Shall I bleed you a little, my dear
- Doctor?" Doctor Break was very good too. He said, "I am vastly
- obliged, Monsieur Laennec, but I am restored now." And as he
- went out of the gate he told Dad it was a syncope - I think. Then
- Sir Arthur said, "Quite right, Bucksteed. Not another word!
- They are both gentlemen." And he took off his cocked hat to
- Doctor Break and Rene.
-
- 'But poor Dad wouldn't let well alone. He kept saying,
- "Philadelphia, what does all this mean?"
-
- '"Well, sir," I said, "I've only just come down. As far as I
- could see, it looked as though Doctor Break had had a sudden
- seizure." That was quite true - if you'd seen Rene seize him. Sir
- Arthur laughed. "Not much change there, Bucksteed," he said.
- "She's a lady - a thorough lady."
-
- '"Heaven knows she doesn't look like one," said poor Dad.
- "Go home, Philadelphia."
-
- 'So I went home, my dear - don't laugh so! - right under Sir
- Arthur's nose - a most enormous nose - feeling as though I were
- twelve years old, going to be whipped. Oh, I beg your pardon, child!'
-
- 'It's all right,' said Una. 'I'm getting on for thirteen. I've never
- been whipped, but I know how you felt. All the same, it must
- have been funny!'
-
- 'Funny! If you'd heard Sir Arthur jerking out, "Good Ged,
- Bucksteed!" every minute as they rode behind me; and poor Dad
- saying, '"'Pon my honour, Arthur, I can't account for it!" Oh,
- how my cheeks tingled when I reached my room! But Cissie had
- laid out my very best evening dress, the white satin one,
- vandyked at the bottom with spots of morone foil, and the pearl
- knots, you know, catching up the drapery from the left shoulder.
- I had poor mother's lace tucker and her coronet comb.'
-
- 'Oh, you lucky!' Una murmured. 'And gloves?'
-
- 'French kid, my dear'- Philadelphia patted her shoulder - 'and
- morone satin shoes and a morone and gold crape fan. That
- restored my calm. Nice things always do. I wore my hair banded
- on my forehead with a little curl over the left ear. And when I
- descended the stairs, en grande tenue, old Amoore curtsied to me
- without my having to stop and look at her, which, alas! is too
- often the case. Sir Arthur highly approved of the dinner, my dear:
- the mackerel did come in time. We had all the Marklake silver out,
- and he toasted my health, and he asked me where my little
- bird's-nesting sister was. I know he did it to quiz me, so I looked
- him straight in the face, my dear, and I said, "I always send her to
- the nursery, Sir Arthur, when I receive guests at Marklake Hall."'
-
- 'Oh, how chee - clever of you. What did he say?' Una cried.
- 'He said, "Not much change there, Bucksteed. Ged, I deserved
- it," and he toasted me again. They talked about the French and
- what a shame it was that Sir Arthur only commanded a brigade at
- Hastings, and he told Dad of a battle in India at a place called
- Assaye. Dad said it was a terrible fight, but Sir Arthur described it
- as though it had been a whist-party - I suppose because a lady was
- present.'
-
- 'Of course you were the lady. I wish I'd seen you,'said Una.
-
- 'I wish you had, child. I had such a triumph after dinner. Rene
- and Doctor Break came in. They had quite made up their quarrel,
- and they told me they had the highest esteem for each other, and I
- laughed and said, "I heard every word of it up in the tree." You
- never saw two men so frightened in your life, and when I said,
- "What was 'the subject of your remarks,' Rene?" neither of them
- knew where to look. Oh, I quizzed them unmercifully. They'd
- seen me jump off the pigsty roof, remember.'
-
- 'But what was the subject of their remarks?' said Una.
-
- 'Oh, Doctor Break said it was a professional matter, so the
- laugh was turned on me. I was horribly afraid it might have been
- something unladylike and indelicate. But that wasn't my
- triumph. Dad asked me to play on the harp. Between just you and
- me, child, I had been practising a new song from London - I don't
- always live in trees - for weeks; and I gave it them for a surprise.'
-
- 'What was it?'said Una. 'Sing it.'
-
- '"I have given my heart to a flower." Not very difficult
- fingering, but r-r-ravishing sentiment.'
-
- Philadelphia coughed and cleared her throat.
-
- 'I've a deep voice for my age and size,' she explained.
- 'Contralto, you know, but it ought to be stronger,' and she began, her
- face all dark against the last of the soft pink sunset:
-
- 'I have given my heart to a flower,
- Though I know it is fading away,
- Though I know it will live but an hour
- And leave me to mourn its decay!
-
- 'Isn't that touchingly sweet? Then the last verse - I wish I had
- my harp, dear - goes as low as my register will reach.'She drew in
- her chin, and took a deep breath:
-
- 'Ye desolate whirlwinds that rave,
- I charge you be good to my dear!
- She is all - she is all that I have,
- And the time of our parting is near!'
-
- 'Beautiful!' said Una. 'And did they like it?'
- 'Like it? They were overwhelmed - accablEs, as Rene says. My
- dear, if I hadn't seen it, I shouldn't have believed that I could have
- drawn tears, genuine tears, to the eyes of four grown men. But I
- did! Rene simply couldn't endure it! He's all French sensibility.
- He hid his face and said, "Assez, Mademoiselle! C'est plus fort que
- moi! Assez!" And Sir Arthur blew his nose and said, "Good Ged!
- This is worse than Assaye!" While Dad sat with the tears simply
- running down his cheeks.'
-
- 'And what did Doctor Break do?'
-
- 'He got up and pretended to look out of the window, but I saw
- his little fat shoulders jerk as if he had the hiccoughs. That was a
- triumph. I never suspected him of sensibility.'
-
- 'Oh, I wish I'd seen! I wish I'd been you,'said Una, clasping her
- hands. Puck rustled and rose from the fern, just as a big blundering
- cock-chafer flew smack against Una's cheek.
-
- When she had finished rubbing the place, Mrs Vincey called to
- her that Pansy had been fractious, or she would have come long
- before to help her strain and pour off.
- 'It didn't matter,' said Una; 'I just waited. Is that old Pansy
- barging about the lower pasture now?'
-
- 'No,' said Mrs Vincey, listening. 'It sounds more like a horse
- being galloped middlin' quick through the woods; but there's no
- road there. I reckon it's one of Gleason's colts loose. Shall I see
- you up to the house, Miss Una?'
-
- 'Gracious, no! thank you. What's going to hurt me?' said Una,
- and she put her stool away behind the oak, and strolled home
- through the gaps that old Hobden kept open for her.
-
-
-
- Brookland Road
-
-
- I was very well pleased with what I knowed,
- I reckoned myself no fool -
- Till I met with a maid on the Brookland Road
- That turned me back to school.
-
- Low down - low down!
- Where the liddle green lanterns shine -
- Oh! maids, I've done with 'ee all but one,
- And she can never be mine!
- 'Twas right in the middest of a hot June night,
- With thunder duntin' round,
- And I seed her face by the fairy light
- That beats from off the ground.
-
- She only smiled and she never spoke,
- She smiled and went away;
- But when she'd gone my heart was broke,
- And my wits was clean astray.
-
- Oh! Stop your ringing and let me be -
- Let be, O Brookland bells!
- You'll ring Old Goodman * out of the sea,
- Before I wed one else!
-
- Old Goodman's farm is rank sea sand,
- And was this thousand year;
- But it shall turn to rich plough land
- Before I change my dear!
-
- Oh! Fairfield Church is water-bound
- From Autumn to the Spring;
- But it shall turn to high hill ground
- Before my bells do ring!
-
- Oh! leave me walk on the Brookland Road,
- In the thunder and warm rain -
- Oh! leave me look where my love goed
- And p'raps I'll see her again!
- Low down - low down!
- Where the liddle green lanterns shine -
- Oh! maids, I've done with 'ee all but one,
- And she can never be mine!
-
-
- *Earl Godwin of the Goodwin Sands(?)
-
-
-
-
- THE KNIFE AND THE NAKED CHALK
-
-
-
- The Run of the Downs
-
-
- The Weald is good, the Downs are best -
- I'll give you the run of 'em, East to West.
- Beachy Head and Winddoor Hill,
- They were once and they are still.
- Firle, Mount Caburn and Mount Harry
- Go back as far as sums'll carry.
- Ditchling Beacon and Chanctonbury Ring,
- They have looked on many a thing;
- And what those two have missed between 'em
- I reckon Truleigh Hill has seen 'em.
- Highden, Bignor and Duncton Down
- Knew Old England before the Crown.
- Linch Down, Treyford and Sunwood
- Knew Old England before the Flood.
- And when you end on the Hampshire side -
- Butser's old as Time and Tide.
- The Downs are sheep, the Weald is corn,
- You be glad you are Sussex born!
-
-
-
- The Knife and the Naked Chalk
-
-
- The children went to the seaside for a month, and lived in a flint
- village on the bare windy chalk Downs, quite thirty miles away
- from home. They made friends with an old shepherd, called Mr
- Dudeney, who had known their Father when their Father was
- little. He did not talk like their own people in the Weald of Sussex,
- and he used different names for farm things, but he understood
- how they felt, and let them go with him. He had a tiny cottage
- about half a mile from the village, where his wife made mead
- from thyme honey, and nursed sick lambs in front of a coal fire,
- while Old Jim, who was Mr Dudeney's sheep-dog's father, lay at
- the door. They brought up beef bones for Old Jim (you must
- never give a sheep-dog mutton bones), and if Mr Dudeney happened
- to be far in the Downs, Mrs Dudeney would tell the dog to
- take them to him, and he did.
-
- One August afternoon when the village water-cart had made
- the street smell specially townified, they went to look for their
- shepherd as usual, and, as usual, Old Jim crawled over the doorstep
- and took them in charge. The sun was hot, the dry grass was
- very slippery, and the distances were very distant.
-
- 'It's Just like the sea,' said Una, when Old Jim halted in the
- shade of a lonely flint barn on a bare rise. 'You see where you're
- going, and - you go there, and there's nothing between.'
-
- Dan slipped off his shoes. 'When we get home I shall sit in the
- woods all day,' he said.
-
- 'Whuff!' said Old Jim, to show he was ready, and struck across
- a long rolling stretch of turf. Presently he asked for his beefbone.
-
- 'Not yet,' said Dan. 'Where's Mr Dudeney? Where's Master?'
- Old Jim looked as if he thought they were mad, and asked
- again.
-
- 'Don't you give it him,' Una cried. 'I'm not going to be left
- howling in a desert.'
-
- 'Show, boy! Show!' said Dan, for the Downs seemed as bare as
- the palm of your hand.
-
- Old Jim sighed, and trotted forward. Soon they spied the blob
- of Mr Dudeney's hat against the sky a long way off.
-
- 'Right! All right!' said Dan. Old Jim wheeled round, took his
- bone carefully between his blunted teeth, and returned to the
- shadow of the old barn, looking just like a wolf. The children
- went on. Two kestrels hung bivvering and squealing above them.
- A gull flapped lazily along the white edge of the cliffs. The curves
- of the Downs shook a little in the heat, and so did Mr Dudeney's
- distant head.
-
- They walked toward it very slowly and found themselves
- staring into a horseshoe-shaped hollow a hundred feet deep,
- whose steep sides were laced with tangled sheep-tracks. The flock
- grazed on the flat at the bottom, under charge of Young Jim. Mr
- Dudeney sat comfortably knitting on the edge of the slope, his
- crook between his knees. They told him what Old Jim had done.
-
- 'Ah, he thought you could see my head as soon as he did. The
- closeter you be to the turf the more you see things. You look
- warm-like,'said Mr Dudeney.
-
- 'We be,' said Una, flopping down. 'And tired.'
-
- 'Set beside o' me here. The shadow'll begin to stretch out in a
- little while, and a heat-shake o' wind will come up with it that'll
- overlay your eyes like so much wool.'
-
- 'We don't want to sleep,' said Una indignantly; but she settled
- herself as she spoke, in the first strip of early afternoon shade.
-
- 'O' course not. You come to talk with me same as your father
- used. He didn't need no dog to guide him to Norton Pit.'
-
- 'Well, he belonged here,' said Dan, and laid himself down at
- length on the turf.
-
- 'He did. And what beats me is why he went off to live among
- them messy trees in the Weald, when he might ha' stayed here and
- looked all about him. There's no profit to trees. They draw the
- lightning, and sheep shelter under 'em, and so, like as not, you'll
- lose a half-score ewes struck dead in one storm. Tck! Your father
- knew that.'
-
- 'Trees aren't messy.' Una rose on her elbow. 'And what about
- firewood? I don't like coal.'
-
- 'Eh? You lie a piece more uphill and you'll lie more natural,'
- said Mr Dudeney, with his provoking deaf smile. 'Now press
- your face down and smell to the turf. That's Southdown thyme
- which makes our Southdown mutton beyond compare, and, my
- mother told me, 'twill cure anything except broken necks, or
- hearts. I forget which.'
-
- They sniffed, and somehow forgot to lift their cheeks from the
- soft thymy cushions.
-
- 'You don't get nothing like that in the Weald. Watercress,
- maybe?' said Mr Dudeney.
-
- 'But we've water - brooks full of it - where you paddle in hot
- weather,' Una replied, watching a yellow-and-violet-banded
- snail-shell close to her eye.
-
- 'Brooks flood. Then you must shift your sheep - let alone
- foot-rot afterward. I put more dependence on a dew-pond any day.'
-
- 'How's a dew-pond made?' said Dan, and tilted his hat over his
- eyes. Mr Dudeney explained.
-
- The air trembled a little as though it could not make up its mind
- whether to slide into the Pit or move across the open. But it
- seemed easiest to go downhill, and the children felt one soft puff
- after another slip and sidle down the slope in fragrant breaths that
- baffed on their eyelids. The little whisper of the sea by the cliffs
- joined with the whisper of the wind over the grass, the hum of
- insects in the thyme, the ruffle and rustle of the flock below, and a
- thickish mutter deep in the very chalk beneath them. Mr
- Dudeney stopped explaining, and went on with his knitting.
- They were roused by voices. The shadow had crept halfway
- down the steep side of Norton Pit, and on the edge of it, his back
- to them, Puck sat beside a half-naked man who seemed busy at
- some work. The wind had dropped, and in that funnel of ground
- every least noise and movement reached them like whispers up a
- water-Pipe.
-
- 'That is clever,' said Puck, leaning over. 'How truly you shape it!'
-
- 'Yes, but what does The Beast care for a brittle flint tip? Bah!'
- The man flicked something contemptuously over his shoulder. It
- fell between Dan and Una - a beautiful dark-blue flint arrow-head
- still hot from the maker's hand.
-
- The man reached for another stone, and worked away like a
- thrush with a snail-shell.
-
- 'Flint work is fool's work,' he said at last. 'One does it because
- one always did it; but when it comes to dealing with The Beast -
- no good!' He shook his shaggy head.
- 'The Beast was dealt with long ago. He has gone,' said Puck.
-
- 'He'll be back at lambing time. I know him.' He chipped very
- carefully, and the flints squeaked.
-
- 'Not he. Children can lie out on the Chalk now all day through
- and go home safe.'
-
- 'Can they? Well, call The Beast by his True Name, and I'll
- believe it,' the man replied.
- 'Surely!' Puck leaped to his feet, curved his hands round his
- mouth and shouted: 'Wolf! Wolf!'
-
- Norton Pit threw back the echo from its dry sides - 'Wuff!'
- Wuff!' like Young jim's bark.
-
- 'You see? You hear?' said Puck. 'Nobody answers. Grey
- Shepherd is gone. Feet-in-the-Night has run off. There are no
- more wolves.'
-
- 'Wonderful!' The man wiped his forehead as though he were
- hot. 'Who drove him away? You?'
-
- 'Many men through many years, each working in his own
- country. Were you one of them?' Puck answered.
-
- The man slid his sheepskin cloak to his waist, and without a
- word pointed to his side, which was all seamed and blotched with
- scars. His arms, too, were dimpled from shoulder to elbow with
- horrible white dimples.
-
- 'I see,' said Puck. 'It is The Beast's mark. What did you use
- against him?'
- 'Hand, hammer, and spear, as our fathers did before us.'
-
- 'So? Then how' - Puck twitched aside the man's dark-brown
- cloak - 'how did a Flint-worker come by that? Show, man, show!'
- He held out his little hand.
-
- The man slipped a long dark iron knife, almost a short sword,
- from his belt, and after breathing on it, handed it hilt-first to
- Puck, who took it with his head on one side, as you should when
- you look at the works of a watch, squinted down the dark blade,
- and very delicately rubbed his forefinger from the point to the hilt.
-
- 'Good!' said he, in a surprised tone.
-
- 'It should be. The Children of the Night made it,' the man answered.
-
- 'So I see by the iron. What might it have cost you?'
-
- 'This!' The man raised his hand to his cheek. Puck whistled like
- a Weald starling.
-
- 'By the Great Rings of the Chalk!' he cried. 'Was that your
- price? Turn sunward that I may see better, and shut your eye.'
- He slipped his hand beneath the man's chin and swung him till
- he faced the children up the slope. They saw that his right eye was
- gone, and the eyelid lay shrunk. Quickly Puck turned him round
- again, and the two sat down.
-
- 'It was for the sheep. The sheep are the people,' said the man, in
- an ashamed voice. 'What else could I have done? You know, Old
- One.'
-
- Puck sighed a little fluttering sigh. 'Take the knife. I listen.'
- The man bowed his head, drove the knife into the turf, and
- while it still quivered said: 'This is witness between us that I speak
- the thing that has been. Before my Knife and the Naked Chalk I
- speak. Touch!'
-
- Puck laid a hand on the hilt. It stopped shaking. The children
- wriggled a little nearer.
-
- 'I am of the People of the Worked Flint. I am the one son of the
- Priestess who sells the Winds to the Men of the Sea. I am the
- Buyer of the Knife - the Keeper of the People,' the man began, in
- a sort of singing shout. 'These are my names in this country of the
- Naked Chalk, between the Trees and the Sea.'
-
- 'Yours was a great country. Your names are great too,' said Puck.
-
- 'One cannot feed some things on names and songs.' The man
- hit himself on the chest. 'It is better - always better - to count
- one's children safe round the fire, their Mother among them.'
-
- 'Ahai!' said Puck. 'I think this will be a very old tale.'
- 'I warm myself and eat at any fire that I choose, but there is no
- one to light me a fire or cook my meat. I sold all that when I
- bought the Magic Knife for my people. it was not right that The
- Beast should master man. What else could I have done?'
-
- 'I hear. I know. I listen,' said Puck.
-
- 'When I was old enough to take my place in the Sheepguard,
- The Beast gnawed all our country like a bone between his teeth.
- He came in behind the flocks at watering-time, and watched them
- round the Dew-ponds; he leaped into the folds between our knees
- at the shearing; he walked out alongside the grazing flocks, and
- chose his meat on the hoof while our boys threw flints at him; he
- crept by night 'into the huts, and licked the babe from between the
- mother's hands; he called his companions and pulled down men
- in broad daylight on the Naked Chalk. No - not always did he do
- so! This was his cunning! He would go away for a while to let us
- forget him. A year - two years perhaps - we neither smelt, nor
- heard, nor saw him. When our flocks had increased; when our
- men did not always look behind them; when children strayed
- from the fenced places; when our women walked alone to draw
- water - back, back, back came the Curse of the Chalk, Grey
- Shepherd, Feet-in-the-Night - The Beast, The Beast, The Beast!
-
- 'He laughed at our little brittle arrows and our poor blunt
- spears. He learned to run in under the stroke of the hammer. I
- think he knew when there was a flaw in the flint. Often it does not
- show till you bring it down on his snout. Then - Pouf! - the false
- flint falls all to flinders, and you are left with the hammer-handle
- in your fist, and his teeth in your flank! I have felt them. At
- evening, too, in the dew, or when it has misted and rained, your
- spear-head lashings slack off, though you have kept them beneath
- your cloak all day. You are alone - but so close to the home ponds
- that you stop to tighten the sinews with hands, teeth, and a piece
- of driftwood. You bend over and pull - so! That is the minute for
- which he has followed you since the stars went out. "Aarh!" he
- "Wurr-aarh!" he says.' (Norton Pit gave back the growl like
- a pack of real wolves.) 'Then he is on your right shoulder feeling
- for the vein in your neck, and - perhaps your sheep run on
- without you. To fight The Beast is nothing, but to be despised by
- The Beast when he fights you - that is like his teeth in the heart!
- Old One, why is it that men desire so greatly, and can do so little?'
-
- 'I do not know. Did you desire so much?' said Puck.
-
- 'I desired to master The Beast. It is not right that The Beast
- should master man. But my people were afraid. Even, my
- Mother, the Priestess, was afraid when I told her what I desired.
- We were accustomed to be afraid of The Beast. When I was made
- a man, and a maiden - she was a Priestess - waited for me at the
- Dew-ponds, The Beast flitted from off the Chalk. Perhaps it was
- a sickness; perhaps he had gone to his Gods to learn how to do us
- new harm. But he went, and we breathed more freely. The
- women sang again; the children were not so much guarded; our
- flocks grazed far out. I took mine yonder'- he pointed inland to
- the hazy line of the Weald -'where the new grass was best. They
- grazed north. I followed till we were close to the Trees' - he
- lowered his voice - 'close there where the Children of the Night
- live.' He pointed north again.
-
- 'Ah, now I remember a thing,' said Puck. 'Tell me, why did
- your people fear the Trees so extremely?'
-
- 'Because the Gods hate the Trees and strike them with lightning.
- We can see them burning for days all along the Chalk's
- edge. Besides, all the Chalk knows that the Children of the Night,
- though they worship our Gods, are magicians. When a man goes
- into their country, they change his spirit; they put words into his
- mouth; they make him like talking water. But a voice in my heart
- told me to go toward the north. While I watched my sheep there I
- saw three Beasts chasing a man, who ran toward the Trees. By
- this I knew he was a Child of the Night. We Flint-workers fear the
- Trees more than we fear The Beast. He had no hammer. He
- carried a knife like this one. A Beast leaped at him. He stretched
- out his knife. The Beast fell dead. The other Beasts ran away
- howling, which they would never have done from a Flint-
- worker. The man went in among the Trees. I looked for the dead
- Beast. He had been killed in a new way - by a single deep, clean
- cut, without bruise or tear, which had split his bad heart. Wonderful!
- So I saw that the man's knife was magic, and I thought
- how to get it, - thought strongly how to get it.
-
- 'When I brought the flocks to the shearing, my Mother the
- Priestess asked me, "What is the new thing which you have seen
- and I see in your face?" I said, "It is a sorrow to me"; and she
- answered, "All new things are sorrow. Sit in my place, and eat
- sorrow." I sat down in her place by the fire, where she talks to the
- ghosts in winter, and two voices spoke in my heart. One voice
- said, "Ask the Children of the Night for the Magic Knife. It is not
- fit that The Beast should master man." I listened to that voice.
-
- ,one voice said, "If you go among the Trees, the Children of
- the Night will change your spirit. Eat and sleep here." The other
- voice said, "Ask for the Knife." I listened to that voice.
-
- 'I said to my Mother in the morning, "I go away to find a thing
- for the people, but I do not know whether I shall return in my
- own shape." She answered, "Whether you live or die, or are
- made different, I am your Mother."'
-
- 'True,' said Puck. 'The Old Ones themselves cannot change
- men's mothers even if they would.'
-
- 'Let us thank the Old Ones! I spoke to my Maiden, the Priestess
- who waited for me at the Dew-ponds. She promised fine things
- too.' The man laughed. 'I went away to that place where I had
- seen the magician with the knife. I lay out two days on the short
- grass before I ventured among the Trees. I felt my way before me
- with a stick. I was afraid of the terrible talking Trees. I was afraid
- of the ghosts in the branches; of the soft ground underfoot; of the
- red and black waters. I was afraid, above all, of the Change. It
- came!'
-
- They saw him wipe his forehead once again, and his strong
- back-muscles quivered till he laid his hand on the knife-hilt.
-
- 'A fire without a flame burned in my head; an evil taste grew in
- my mouth; my eyelids shut hot over my eyes; my breath was hot
- between my teeth, and my hands were like the hands of a
- stranger. I was made to sing songs and to mock the Trees, though
- I was afraid of them. At the same time I saw myself laughing, and
- I was very sad for this fine young man, who was myself. Ah! The
- Children of the Night know magic.'
-
- 'I think that is done by the Spirits of the Mist. They change a
- man, if he sleeps among them,' said Puck. 'Had you slept in any mists?'
-
- 'Yes - but I know it was the Children of the Night. After three
- days I saw a red light behind the Trees, and I heard a heavy noise. I
- saw the Children of the Night dig red stones from a hole, and lay
- them in fires. The stones melted like tallow, and the men beat the
- soft stuff with hammers. I wished to speak to these men, but the
- words were changed in my mouth, and all I could say was, "Do
- not make that noise. It hurts my head." By this I knew that I was
- bewitched, and I clung to the Trees, and prayed the Children of
- the Night to take off their spells. They were cruel. They asked me
- many questions which they would never allow me to answer.
- They changed my words between my teeth till I wept. Then they
- led me into a hut and covered the floor with hot stones and dashed
- water on the stones, and sang charms till the sweat poured off me
- like water. I slept. When I waked, my own spirit -not the strange,
- shouting thing - was back in my body, and I was like a cool bright
- stone on the shingle between the sea and the sunshine. The
- magicians came to hear me - women and men - each wearing a
- Magic Knife. Their Priestess was their Ears and their Mouth.
-
- 'I spoke. I spoke many words that went smoothly along like
- sheep in order when their shepherd, standing on a mound, can
- count those coming, and those far off getting ready to come. I
- asked for Magic Knives for my people. I said that my people
- would bring meat, and milk, and wool, and lay them in the short
- grass outside the Trees, if the Children of the Night would leave
- Magic Knives for our people to take away. They were pleased.
- Their Priestess said, "For whose sake have you come?" I
- answered, "The sheep are the people. If The Beast kills our sheep,
- our people die. So I come for a Magic Knife to kill The Beast."
-
- 'She said, "We do not know if our God will let us trade with the
- people of the Naked Chalk. Wait till we have asked."
-
- 'When they came back from the Question-place (their Gods are
- our Gods), their Priestess said, "The God needs a proof that your
- words are true." I said, "What is the proof?" She said, "The God
- says that if you have come for the sake of your people you will
- give him your right eye to be put out; but if you have come for
- any other reason you will not give it. This proof is between you
- and the God. We ourselves are sorry."
-
- 'I said, "This is a hard proof. Is there no other road?"
-
- 'She said, "Yes. You can go back to your people with your two
- eyes in your head if you choose. But then you will not get any
- Magic Knives for your people."
-
- 'I said, "It would be easier if I knew that I were to be killed."
-
- 'She said, "Perhaps the God knew this too. See! I have made my
- knife hot."
-
- 'I said, "Be quick, then!" With her knife heated in the flame she
- put out my right eye. She herself did it. I am the son of a Priestess.
- She was a Priestess. It was not work for any common man.'
-
- 'True! Most true,' said Puck. 'No common man's work that.
- And, afterwards?'
-
- 'Afterwards I did not see out of that eye any more. I found also
- that a one eye does not tell you truly where things are. Try it!'
-
- At this Dan put his hand over one eye, and reached for the flint
- arrow-head on the grass. He missed it by inches. 'It's true,' he
- whispered to Una. 'You can't judge distances a bit with only one
- eye.'
-
- Puck was evidently making the same experiment, for the man
- laughed at him.
-
- 'I know it is so,' said he. 'Even now I am not always sure of my
- blow. I stayed with the Children of the Night till my eye healed.
- They said I was the son of Tyr, the God who put his right hand in
- a Beast's mouth. They showed me how they melted their red
- stone and made the Magic Knives of it. They told me the charms
- they sang over the fires and at the beatings. I can sing many
- charms.' Then he began to laugh like a boy.
-
- 'I was thinking of my journey home,' he said, 'and of the
- surprised Beast. He had come back to the Chalk. I saw him - I
- smelt his lairs as soon as ever I left the Trees. He did not know I
- had the Magic Knife - I hid it under my cloak - the Knife that the
- Priestess gave me. Ho! Ho! That happy day was too short! See! A
- Beast would wind me. "Wow!" he would say. "Here is my
- Flint-worker!" He would come leaping, tail in air; he would roll;
- he would lay his head between his paws out of merriness of heart
- at his warm, waiting meal. He would leap - and, oh, his eye in
- mid-leap when he saw - when he saw the knife held ready for
- him! It pierced his hide as a rush pierces curdled milk. Often he
- had no time to howl. I did not trouble to flay any beasts I killed.
- Sometimes I missed my blow. Then I took my little flint hammer
- and beat out his brains as he cowered. He made no fight. He knew
- the Knife! But The Beast is very cunning. Before evening all The
- Beasts had smelt the blood on my knife, and were running from
- me like hares. They knew! Then I walked as a man should - the
- Master of The Beast!
-
- 'So came I back to my Mother's house. There was a lamb to be
- killed. I cut it in two halves with my knife, and I told her all my
- tale. She said, "This is the work of a God." I kissed her and
- laughed. I went to my Maiden who waited for me at the Dew-
- ponds. There was a lamb to be killed. I cut it in two halves with
- my knife, and told her all my tale. She said, "It is the work of a
- God." I laughed, but she pushed me away, and being on my blind
- side, ran off before I could kiss her. I went to the Men of the
- Sheepguard at watering-time. There was a sheep to be killed for
- their meat. I cut it in two halves with my knife, and told them all
- my tale. They said, "It is the work of a God." I said, "We talk too
- much about Gods. Let us eat and be happy, and tomorrow I will
- take you to the Children of the Night, and each man will find a
- Magic Knife. "
-
- 'I was glad to smell our sheep again; to see the broad sky from
- edge to edge, and to hear the sea. I slept beneath the stars in my
- cloak. The men talked among themselves.
-
- 'I led them, the next day, to the Trees, taking with me meat,
- wool, and curdled milk, as I had promised. We found the Magic
- Knives laid out on the grass, as the Children of the Night had
- promised. They watched us from among the Trees. Their Priestess
- called to me and said, "How is it with your people?" I said
- "Their hearts are changed. I cannot see their hearts as I used to."
- She said, "That is because you have only one eye. Come to me
- and I will be both your eyes." But I said, "I must show my people
- how to use their knives against The Beast, as you showed me how
- to use my knife." I said this because the Magic Knife does not
- balance like the flint. She said, "What you have done, you have
- done for the sake of a woman, and not for the sake of your
- people." I asked of her, "Then why did the God accept my right
- eye, and why are you so angry?" She answered, "Because any
- man can lie to a God, but no man can lie to a woman. And I am not
- angry with you. I am only very sorrowful for you. Wait a little,
- and you will see out of your one eye why I am sorry. So she hid herself.
-
- 'I went back with my people, each one carrying his Knife, and
- making it sing in the air - tssee-sssse. The Flint never sings. It
- mutters - ump-ump. The Beast heard. The Beast saw. He knew!
- Everywhere he ran away from us. We all laughed. As we walked
- over the grass my Mother's brother - the Chief on the Men's Side
- - he took off his Chief's necklace of yellow sea-stones.'
-
- 'How? Eh? Oh, I remember! Amber,' said Puck.
-
- 'And would have put them on my neck. I said, "No, I am
- content. What does my one eye matter if my other eye sees fat
- sheep and fat children running about safely?" My Mother's
- brother said to them, "I told you he would never take such
- things." Then they began to sing a song in the Old Tongue - The
- Song of Tyr. I sang with them, but my Mother's brother said,
- "This is your song, O Buyer of the Knife. Let us sing it, Tyr."
-
- 'Even then I did not understand, till I saw that - that no man
- stepped on my shadow; and I knew that they thought me to be a
- God, like the God Tyr, who gave his right hand to conquer a
- Great Beast.'
-
- 'By the Fire in the Belly of the Flint was that so?' Puck
- rapped out.
-
- 'By my Knife and the Naked Chalk, so it was! They made way
- for my shadow as though it had been a Priestess walking to the
- Barrows of the Dead. I was afraid. I said to myself, "My Mother
- and my Maiden will know I am not Tyr." But still I was afraid,
- with the fear of a man who falls into a steep flint-pit while he runs,
- and feels that it will be hard to climb out.
-
- 'When we came to the Dew-ponds all our people were there.
- The men showed their knives and told their tale. The sheep guards
- also had seen The Beast flying from us. The Beast went west
- across the river in packs - howling! He knew the Knife had come
- to the Naked Chalk at last - at last! He knew! So my work was
- done. I looked for my Maiden among the Priestesses. She looked
- at me, but she did not smile. She made the sign to me that our
- Priestesses must make when they sacrifice to the Old Dead in the
- Barrows. I would have spoken, but my Mother's brother made
- himself my Mouth, as though I had been one of the Old Dead in
- the Barrows for whom our Priests speak to the people on
- Midsummer Mornings.'
-
- 'I remember. Well I remember those Midsummer Mornings!'
- said Puck.
-
- 'Then I went away angrily to my Mother's house. She would
- have knelt before me. Then I was more angry, but she said,
- "Only a God would have spoken to me thus, a Priestess. A man
- would have feared the punishment of the Gods." I looked at her
- and I laughed. I could not stop my unhappy laughing. They called
- me from the door by the name of Tyr himself. A young man with
- whom I had watched my first flocks, and chipped my first arrow,
- and fought my first Beast, called me by that name in the Old
- Tongue. He asked my leave to take my Maiden. His eyes were
- lowered, his hands were on his forehead. He was full of the fear of
- a God, but of me, a man, he had no fear when he asked. I did not
- kill him. I said, "Call the maiden." She came also without fear -
- this very one that had waited for me, that had talked with me, by
- our Dew-ponds. Being a Priestess, she lifted her eyes to me. As I
- look on a hill or a cloud, so she looked at me. She spoke in the Old
- Tongue which Priestesses use when they make prayers to the Old
- Dead in the Barrows. She asked leave that she might light the fire
- in my companion's house -and that I should bless their children. I
- did not kill her. I heard my own voice, little and cold, say, "Let it
- be as you desire," and they went away hand in hand. My heart
- grew little and cold; a wind shouted in my ears; my eye darkened.
- I said to my Mother, "Can a God die?" I heard her say, "What is
- it? What is it, my son?" and I fell into darkness full of hammer-
- noises. I was not.'
-
- 'Oh, poor - poor God!' said Puck. 'And your wise Mother?'
-
- 'She knew. As soon as I dropped she knew. When my spirit
- came back I heard her whisper in my ear, "Whether you live or
- die, or are made different, I am your Mother." That was good -
- better even than the water she gave me and the going away of the
- sickness. Though I was ashamed to have fallen down, yet I was
- very glad. She was glad too. Neither of us wished to lose the
- other. There is only the one Mother for the one son. I heaped the
- fire for her, and barred the doors, and sat at her feet as before I
- went away, and she combed my hair, and sang.
-
- 'I said at last, "What is to be done to the people who say that I
- am Tyr?"
-
- 'She said, "He who has done a God-like thing must bear
- himself like a God. I see no way out of it. The people are now your
- sheep till you die. You cannot drive them off."
-
-
- 'I said, "This is a heavier sheep than I can lift." She said, "In
- time it will grow easy. In time perhaps you will not lay it down
- for any maiden anywhere. Be wise - be very wise, my son, for
- nothing is left you except the words, and the songs, and the
- worship of a God."
-
- 'Oh, poor God!' said Puck. 'But those are not altogether
- bad things.'
-
- 'I know they are not; but I would sell them all - all - all for one
- small child of my own, smearing himself with the ashes of our
- own house-fire.'
-
- He wrenched his knife from the turf, thrust it into his belt and
- stood up.
-
- 'And yet, what else could I have done?' he said. 'The sheep are
- the people.'
-
- 'It is a very old tale,' Puck answered. 'I have heard the like of it
- not only on the Naked Chalk, but also among the Trees - under
- Oak, and Ash, and Thorn.'
-
- The afternoon shadows filled all the quiet emptiness of Norton
- Pit. The children heard the sheep-bells and Young jim's busy
- bark above them, and they scrambled up the slope to the level.
-
- 'We let you have your sleep out,' said Mr Dudeney, as the flock
- scattered before them. 'It's making for tea-time now.'
-
- 'Look what I've found, said Dan, and held up a little blue flint
- arrow-head as fresh as though it had been chipped that very day.
-
- 'Oh,' said Mr Dudeney, 'the closeter you be to the turf the
- more you're apt to see things. I've found 'em often. Some says the
- fairies made 'em, but I says they was made by folks like ourselves
- - only a goodish time back. They're lucky to keep. Now, you
- couldn't ever have slept - not to any profit - among your father's
- trees same as you've laid out on Naked Chalk - could you?'
-
- 'One doesn't want to sleep in the woods,' said Una.
-
- 'Then what's the good of 'em?' said Mr Dudeney. 'Might as
- well set in the barn all day. Fetch 'em 'long, Jim boy!'
-
- The Downs, that looked so bare and hot when they came, were
- full of delicious little shadow-dimples; the smell of the thyme and
- the salt mixed together on the south-west drift from the still sea;
- their eyes dazzled with the low sun, and the long grass under it
- looked golden. The sheep knew where their fold was, so Young
- Jim came back to his master, and they all four strolled home, the
- scabious-heads swishing about their ankles, and their shadows
- streaking behind them like the shadows of giants.
-
-
-
- Song of the Men's Side
-
-
- Once we feared The Beast - when he followed us we ran,
- Ran very fast though we knew
- It was not right that The Beast should master Man;
- But what could we Flint-workers do?
- The Beast only grinned at our spears round his ears -
- Grinned at the hammers that we made;
- But now we will hunt him for the life with the Knife -
- And this is the Buyer of the Blade!
-
- Room for his shadow on the grass - let it pass!
- To left and right - stand clear!
- This is the Buyer of the Blade - be afraid!
- This is the great God Tyr!
-
- Tyr thought hard till he hammered out a plan,
- For he knew it was not right
- (And it is not right) that The Beast should master Man;
- So he went to the Children of the Night.
- He begged a Magic Knife of their make for our sake.
- When he begged for the Knife they said:
- 'The price of the Knife you would buy is an eye!'
- And that was the price he paid.
-
- Tell it to the Barrows of the Dead - run ahead!
- Shout it so the Women's Side can hear!
- This is the Buyer of the Blade - be afraid!
- This is the great God Tyr!
-
- Our women and our little ones may walk on the Chalk,
- As far as we can see them and beyond.
- We shall not be anxious for our sheep when we keep
- Tally at the shearing-pond.
-
- We can eat with both our elbows on our knees, if we please,
- We can sleep after meals in the sun;
- For Shepherd-of-the-Twilight is dismayed at the Blade,
- Feet-in-the-Night have run!
- Dog-without-a-Master goes away (Hai, Tyr aie!),
- Devil-in-the-Dusk has run!
-
- Then:
- Room for his shadow on the grass - let it pass!
- To left and right - stand clear!
- This is the Buyer of the Blade - be afraid!
- This is the great God Tyr!
-
-
-
-
- BROTHER SQUARE-TOES
-
-
-
- Philadelphia
-
-
- If you're off to Philadelphia in the morning,
- You mustn't take my stories for a guide.
- There's little left indeed of the city you will read of,
- And all the folk I write about have died.
- Now few will understand if you mention Talleyrand,
- Or remember what his cunning and his skill did.
- And the cabmen at the wharf do not know Count Zinnendorf,
- Nor the Church in Philadelphia he builded.
-
- It is gone, gone, gone with lost Atlantis
- (Never say I didn't give you warning).
- In Seventeen Ninety-three 'twas there for all to see,
- But it's not in Philadelphia this morning,
-
- If you're off to Philadelphia in the morning,
- You mustn't go by everything I've said.
- Bob Bicknell's Southern Stages have been laid aside for ages,
- But the Limited will take you there instead.
- Toby Hirte can't be seen at One Hundred and Eighteen,
- North Second Street - no matter when you call;
- And I fear you'll search in vain for the wash-house down the lane
- Where Pharaoh played the fiddle at the ball.
-
- It is gone, gone, gone with Thebes the Golden
- (Never say I didn't give you warning).
- In Seventeen Ninety-four 'twas a famous dancing-floor -
- But it's not in Philadelphia this morning.
-
- If you're off to Philadelphia in the morning,
- You must telegraph for rooms at some Hotel.
- You needn't try your luck at Epply's or the 'Buck,'
- Though the Father of his Country liked them well.
- It is not the slightest use to inquire for Adam Goos,
- Or to ask where Pastor Meder has removed - so
- You must treat as out-of-date the story I relate
- Of the Church in Philadelphia he loved so.
-
- He is gone, gone, gone with Martin Luther
- (Never say I didn't give you warning).
- In Seventeen Ninety-five he was (rest his soul!) alive,
- But he's not in Philadelphia this morning.
- If you're off to Philadelphia this morning,
- And wish to prove the truth of what I say,
- I pledge my word you'll find the pleasant land behind
- Unaltered since Red Jacket rode that way.
- Still the pine-woods scent the noon; still the cat-bird sings his tune;
- Still Autumn sets the maple-forest blazing.
- Still the grape-vine through the dusk flings her soul-compelling musk;
- Still the fire-flies in the corn make night amazing.
- They are there, there, there with Earth immortal
- (Citizens, I give you friendly warning).
- The things that truly last when men and times have passed,
- They are all in Pennsylvania this morning!
-
-
-
- Brother Square-Toes
-
-
- It was almost the end of their visit to the seaside. They had turned
- themselves out of doors while their trunks were being packed,
- and strolled over the Downs towards the dull evening sea. The
- tide was dead low under the chalk cliffs, and the little wrinkled
- waves grieved along the sands up the coast to Newhaven and
- down the coast to long, grey Brighton, whose smoke trailed out
- across the Channel.
-
- They walked to The Gap, where the cliff is only a few feet high.
- A windlass for hoisting shingle from the beach below stands at the
- edge of it. The Coastguard cottages are a little farther on, and an
- old ship's figurehead of a Turk in a turban stared at them over the wall.
- 'This time tomorrow we shall be at home, thank goodness,'
- said Una. 'I hate the sea!'
-
- 'I believe it's all right in the middle,' said Dan. 'The edges are
- the sorrowful parts.'
-
- Cordery, the coastguard, came out of the cottage, levelled his
- telescope at some fishing-boats, shut it with a click and walked
- away. He grew smaller and smaller along the edge of the cliff,
- where neat piles of white chalk every few yards show the path
- even on the darkest night.
- 'Where's Cordery going?'said Una.
-
- 'Half-way to Newhaven,'said Dan. 'Then he'll meet the
- Newhaven coastguard and turn back. He says if coastguards were done
- away with, smuggling would start up at once.'
-
- A voice on the beach under the cliff began to sing:
-
- 'The moon she shined on Telscombe Tye -
- On Telscombe Tye at night it was -
- She saw the smugglers riding by,
- A very pretty sight it was!'
-
- Feet scrabbled on the flinty path. A dark, thin-faced man in
- very neat brown clothes and broad-toed shoes came up, followed
- by Puck.
-
- 'Three Dunkirk boats was standin' in!'
-
- the man went on.
- 'Hssh!' said Puck. 'You'll shock these nice young people.'
-
- 'Oh! Shall I? Mille pardons!' He shrugged his shoulders almost
- up to his ears - spread his hands abroad, and jabbered in French.
- 'No comprenny?' he said. 'I'll give it you in Low German.' And
- he went off in another language, changing his voice and manner
- so completely that they hardly knew him for the same person.
- But his dark beady-brown eyes still twinkled merrily in his lean
- face, and the children felt that they did not suit the straight, plain,
- snuffy-brown coat, brown knee-breeches, and broad-brimmed
- hat. His hair was tied 'in a short pigtail which danced wickedly
- when he turned his head.
-
- 'Ha' done!' said Puck, laughing. 'Be one thing or t'other,
- Pharaoh - French or English or German - no great odds which.'
-
- 'Oh, but it is, though,' said Una quickly. 'We haven't begun
- German yet, and - and we're going back to our French next week.'
-
- 'Aren't you English?' said Dan. 'We heard you singing just now.'
-
- 'Aha! That was the Sussex side o' me. Dad he married a French
- girl out o' Boulogne, and French she stayed till her dyin' day. She
- was an Aurette, of course. We Lees mostly marry Aurettes.
- Haven't you ever come across the saying:
-
- 'Aurettes and Lees,
- Like as two peas.
- What they can't smuggle,
- They'll run over seas'?
-
- 'Then, are you a smuggler?' Una cried; and, 'Have you
- smuggled much?'said Dan.
-
- Mr Lee nodded solemnly.
-
- 'Mind you,' said he, 'I don't uphold smuggling for the generality
- o' mankind - mostly they can't make a do of it - but I was
- brought up to the trade, d'ye see, in a lawful line o' descent on' -
- he waved across the Channel -'on both sides the water. 'Twas all
- in the families, same as fiddling. The Aurettes used mostly to run
- the stuff across from Boulogne, and we Lees landed it here and ran
- it up to London Town, by the safest road.'
-
- 'Then where did you live?' said Una.
-
- 'You mustn't ever live too close to your business in our trade.
- We kept our little fishing smack at Shoreham, but otherwise we
- Lees was all honest cottager folk - at Warminghurst under Washington
- - Bramber way - on the old Penn estate.'
-
- 'Ah!' said Puck, squatted by the windlass. 'I remember a piece
- about the Lees at Warminghurst, I do:
-
- 'There was never a Lee to Warminghurst
- That wasn't a gipsy last and first.
-
- I reckon that's truth, Pharaoh.'
-
- Pharaoh laughed. 'Admettin' that's true,' he said, 'my gipsy
- blood must be wore pretty thin, for I've made and kept a worldly
- fortune.'
-
- 'By smuggling?' Dan asked.
- 'No, in the tobacco trade.'
-
- 'You don't mean to say you gave up smuggling just to go and
- be a tobacconist!' Dan looked so disappointed they all had to laugh.
-
- 'I'm sorry; but there's all sorts of tobacconists,' Pharaoh
- replied. 'How far out, now, would you call that smack with the
- patch on her foresail?' He pointed to the fishing-boats.
-
- 'A scant mile,' said Puck after a quick look.
-
- 'Just about. It's seven fathom under her - clean sand. That was
- where Uncle Aurette used to sink his brandy kegs from
- Boulogne, and we fished 'em up and rowed 'em into The Gap
- here for the ponies to run inland. One thickish night in January of
- 'Ninety-three, Dad and Uncle Lot and me came over from
- Shoreham in the smack, and we found Uncle Aurette and the
- L'Estranges, my cousins, waiting for us in their lugger with New
- Year's presents from Mother's folk in Boulogne. I remember
- Aunt Cecile she'd sent me a fine new red knitted cap, which I put
- on then and there, for the French was having their Revolution in
- those days, and red caps was all the fashion. Uncle Aurette tells us
- that they had cut off their King Louis' head, and, moreover, the
- Brest forts had fired on an English man-o'-war. The news wasn't
- a week old.
-
- '"That means war again, when we was only just getting used
- to the peace," says Dad. "Why can't King George's men and King
- Louis' men do on their uniforms and fight it out over our heads?"
-
- '"Me too, I wish that," says Uncle Aurette. "But they'll be
- pressing better men than themselves to fight for 'em. The press-
- gangs are out already on our side. You look out for yours. "
-
- '"I'll have to bide ashore and grow cabbages for a while, after
- I've run this cargo; but I do wish" - Dad says, going over the
- lugger's side with our New Year presents under his arm and
- young L'Estrange holding the lantern - "I just do wish that those
- folk which make war so easy had to run one cargo a month all this
- winter. It 'ud show 'em what honest work means."
-
- '"Well, I've warned ye," says Uncle Aurette. "I'll be slipping
- off now before your Revenue cutter comes. Give my love to
- Sister and take care o' the kegs. It's thicking to southward."
- 'I remember him waving to us and young Stephen L'Estrange
- blowing out the lantern. By the time we'd fished up the kegs the
- fog came down so thick Dad judged it risky for me to row 'em
- ashore, even though we could hear the ponies stamping on the
- beach. So he and Uncle Lot took the dinghy and left me in the
- smack playing on my fiddle to guide 'em back.
-
- 'Presently I heard guns. Two of 'em sounded mighty like
- Uncle Aurette's three-pounders. He didn't go naked about the
- seas after dark. Then come more, which I reckoned was Captain
- Giddens in the Revenue cutter. He was open-handed with his
- compliments, but he would lay his guns himself. I stopped fiddling
- to listen, and I heard a whole skyful o' French up in the fog -
- and a high bow come down on top o' the smack. I hadn't time to
- call or think. I remember the smack heeling over, and me
- standing on the gunwale pushing against the ship's side as if I
- hoped to bear her off. Then the square of an open port, with a
- lantern in it, slid by in front of my nose. I kicked back on our
- gunwale as it went under and slipped through that port into the
- French ship - me and my fiddle.'
-
- 'Gracious!' said Una. 'What an adventure!'
-
- 'Didn't anybody see you come in?' said Dan.
-
- 'There wasn't any one there. I'd made use of an orlop-deck port
- - that's the next deck below the gun-deck, which by rights should
- not have been open at all. The crew was standing by their guns up
- above. I rolled on to a pile of dunnage in the dark and I went to
- sleep. When I woke, men was talking all round me, telling each
- other their names and sorrows just like Dad told me pressed men
- used to talk in the last war. Pretty soon I made out they'd all been
- hove aboard together by the press-gangs, and left to sort
- 'emselves. The ship she was the Embuscade, a thirty-six-gun
- Republican frigate, Captain Jean Baptiste Bompard, two days out
- of Le Havre, going to the United States with a Republican French
- Ambassador of the name of Genet. They had been up all night
- clearing for action on account of hearing guns in the fog. Uncle
- Aurette and Captain Giddens must have been passing the time o'
- day with each other off Newhaven, and the frigate had drifted
- past 'em. She never knew she'd run down our smack. Seeing so
- many aboard was total strangers to each other, I thought one
- more mightn't be noticed; so I put Aunt Cecile's red cap on the
- back of my head, and my hands in my pockets like the rest, and, as
- we French say, I circulated till I found the galley.
-
- '"What! Here's one of 'em that isn't sick!" says a cook. "Take
- his breakfast to Citizen Bompard."
-
- 'I carried the tray to the cabin, but I didn't call this Bompard
- "Citizen." Oh no! "Mon Capitaine" was my little word, same as
- Uncle Aurette used to answer in King Louis' Navy. Bompard, he
- liked it. He took me on for cabin servant, and after that no one
- asked questions; and thus I got good victuals and light work all
- the way across to America. He talked a heap of politics, and so did
- his officers, and when this Ambassador Genet got rid of his
- land-stomach and laid down the law after dinner, a rooks'
- parliament was nothing compared to their cabin. I learned to
- know most of the men which had worked the French Revolution,
- through waiting at table and hearing talk about 'em. One of our
- forecas'le six-pounders was called Danton and t'other Marat. I
- used to play the fiddle between 'em, sitting on the capstan. Day in
- and day out Bompard and Monsieur Genet talked o' what France
- had done, and how the United States was going to join her to
- finish off the English in this war. Monsieur Genet said he'd
- justabout make the United States fight for France. He was a rude
- common man. But I liked listening. I always helped drink any
- healths that was proposed - specially Citizen Danton's who'd cut
- off King Louis' head. An all-Englishman might have been
- shocked - but that's where my French blood saved me.
-
- 'It didn't save me from getting a dose of ship's fever though, the
- week before we put Monsieur Genet ashore at Charleston; and
- what was left of me after bleeding and pills took the dumb horrors
- from living 'tween decks. The surgeon, Karaguen his name was,
- kept me down there to help him with his plasters - I was too weak
- to wait on Bompard. I don't remember much of any account for
- the next few weeks, till I smelled lilacs, and I looked out of the
- port, and we was moored to a wharf-edge and there was a town o'
- fine gardens and red-brick houses and all the green leaves o' God's
- world waiting for me outside.
-
- '"What's this?" I said to the sick-bay man - Old Pierre
- Tiphaigne he was. "Philadelphia," says Pierre. "You've missed it
- all. We're sailing next week. "
-
- 'I just turned round and cried for longing to be amongst
- the laylocks.
-
- '"If that's your trouble," says old Pierre, "you go straight
- ashore. None'll hinder you. They're all gone mad on these coasts
- - French and American together. 'Tisn't my notion o' war."
- Pierre was an old King Louis man.
-
- 'My legs was pretty tottly, but I made shift to go on deck,
- which it was like a fair. The frigate was crowded with fine
- gentlemen and ladies pouring in and out. They sung and they
- waved French flags, while Captain Bompard and his officers -
- yes, and some of the men - speechified to all and sundry about
- war with England. They shouted, "Down with England!" -
- "Down with Washington!" - "Hurrah for France and the
- Republic!" I couldn't make sense of it. I wanted to get out from
- that crunch of swords and petticoats and sit in a field. One of the
- gentlemen said to me, "Is that a genuine cap o' Liberty you're
- wearing?" 'Twas Aunt Cecile's red one, and pretty near wore
- out. "Oh yes!" I says, "straight from France." "I'll give you a
- shilling for it," he says, and with that money in my hand and my
- fiddle under my arm I squeezed past the entry-port and went
- ashore. It was like a dream - meadows, trees, flowers, birds,
- houses, and people all different! I sat me down in a meadow and
- fiddled a bit, and then I went in and out the streets, looking and
- smelling and touching, like a little dog at a fair. Fine folk was
- setting on the white stone doorsteps of their houses, and a girl
- threw me a handful of laylock sprays, and when I said "Merci"
- without thinking, she said she loved the French. They all was the
- fashion in the city. I saw more tricolour flags in Philadelphia than
- ever I'd seen in Boulogne, and every one was shouting for war
- with England. A crowd o' folk was cheering after our French
- Ambassador - that same Monsieur Genet which we'd left at
- Charleston. He was a-horseback behaving as if the place belonged
- to him - and commanding all and sundry to fight the British. But
- I'd heard that before. I got into a long straight street as wide as the
- Broyle, where gentlemen was racing horses. I'm fond o' horses.
- Nobody hindered 'em, and a man told me it was called Race
- Street o' purpose for that. Then I followed some black niggers,
- which I'd never seen close before; but I left them to run after a
- great, proud, copper-faced man with feathers in his hair and a red
- blanket trailing behind him. A man told me he was a real Red
- Indian called Red Jacket, and I followed him into an alley-way off
- Race Street by Second Street, where there was a fiddle playing.
- I'm fond o' fiddling. The Indian stopped at a baker's shop -
- Conrad Gerhard's it was - and bought some sugary cakes. Hearing
- what the price was I was going to have some too, but the
- Indian asked me in English if I was hungry. "Oh yes!" I says. I
- must have looked a sore scrattel. He opens a door on to a staircase
- and leads the way up. We walked into a dirty little room full of
- flutes and fiddles and a fat man fiddling by the window, in a smell
- of cheese and medicines fit to knock you down. I was knocked
- down too, for the fat man jumped up and hit me a smack in the
- face. I fell against an old spinet covered with pill-boxes and the
- pills rolled about the floor. The Indian never moved an eyelid.
-
- '"Pick up the pills! Pick up the pills!" the fat man screeches.
-
- 'I started picking 'em up - hundreds of 'em - meaning to run
- out under the Indian's arm, but I came on giddy all over and I sat
- down. The fat man went back to his fiddling.
-
- '"Toby!" says the Indian after quite a while. "I brought the
- boy to be fed, not hit."
-
- '"What?" says Toby, "I thought it was Gert Schwankfelder."
- He put down his fiddle and took a good look at me. "Himmel!"
- he says. "I have hit the wrong boy. It is not the new boy. Why are
- you not the new boy? Why are you not Gert Schwankfelder?"
-
- '"I don't know," I said. "The gentleman in the pink blanket
- brought me."
-
- 'Says the Indian, "He is hungry, Toby. Christians always feed
- the hungry. So I bring him."
-
- '"You should have said that first," said Toby. He pushed
- plates at me and the Indian put bread and pork on them, and a
- glass of Madeira wine. I told him I was off the French ship, which
- I had joined on account of my mother being French. That was
- true enough when you think of it, and besides I saw that the
- French was all the fashion in Philadelphia. Toby and the Indian
- whispered and I went on picking up the pills.
-
- '"You like pills - eh?" says Toby.
- '"No," I says. "I've seen our ship's doctor roll too many of
- em.'
-
- '"Ho!" he says, and he shoves two bottles at me. "What's
- those?"
-
- '"Calomel," I says. "And t'other's senna.
-
- '"Right," he says. "One week have I tried to teach Gert
- Schwankfelder the difference between them, yet he cannot tell.
- You like to fiddle?" he says. He'd just seen my kit on the floor.
-
- '"Oh yes!" says I,
-
- '"Oho!" he says. "What note is this?" drawing his bow across.
-
- 'He meant it for A, so I told him it was.
-
- '"My brother," he says to the Indian. "I think this is the hand
- of Providence! I warned that Gert if he went to play upon the
- wharves any more he would hear from me. Now look at this boy
- and say what you think."
-
- 'The Indian looked me over whole minutes - there was a
- musical clock on the wall and dolls came out and hopped while
- the hour struck. He looked me over all the while they did it.
-
- '"Good," he says at last. "This boy is good."
-
- '"Good, then," says Toby. "Now I shall play my fiddle and
- you shall sing your hymn, brother. Boy, go down to the bakery
- and tell them you are young Gert Schwankfelder that was. The
- horses are in Davy jones's locker. If you ask any questions you
- shall hear from me."
-
- 'I left 'em singing hymns and I went down to old Conrad
- Gerhard. He wasn't at all surprised when I told him I was young
- Gert Schwankfelder that was. He knew Toby. His wife she
- walked me into the back-yard without a word, and she washed
- me and she cut my hair to the edge of a basin, and she put me to
- bed, and oh! how I slept - how I slept in that little room behind the
- oven looking on the flower garden! I didn't know Toby went to
- the Embuscade that night and bought me off Dr Karaguen for
- twelve dollars and a dozen bottles of Seneca Oil. Karaguen
- wanted a new lace to his coat, and he reckoned I hadn't long to
- live; so he put me down as "discharged sick."
-
- 'I like Toby,' said Una.
-
- 'Who was he?' said Puck.
-
- 'Apothecary Tobias Hirte,' Pharaoh replied. 'One Hundred
- and Eighteen, Second Street - the famous Seneca Oil man, that
- lived half of every year among the Indians. But let me tell my tale
- my own way, same as his brown mare used to go to Lebanon.'
-
- 'Then why did he keep her in Davy Jones's locker?' Dan asked.
- 'That was his joke. He kept her under David Jones's hat shop in
- the "Buck" tavern yard, and his Indian friends kept their ponies
- there when they visited him. I looked after the horses when I
- wasn't rolling pills on top of the old spinet, while he played his
- fiddle and Red Jacket sang hymns. I liked it. I had good victuals,
- light work, a suit o' clean clothes, a plenty music, and quiet,
- smiling German folk all around that let me sit in their gardens.
- My first Sunday, Toby took me to his church in Moravian Alley;
- and that was in a garden too. The women wore long-eared caps
- and handkerchiefs. They came in at one door and the men at
- another, and there was a brass chandelier you could see your face
- in, and a nigger-boy to blow the organ bellows. I carried Toby's
- fiddle, and he played pretty much as he chose all against the organ
- and the singing. He was the only one they let do it, for they was a
- simple-minded folk. They used to wash each other's feet up in the
- attic to keep 'emselves humble: which Lord knows they didn't need.'
-
- 'How very queer!' said Una.
-
- Pharaoh's eyes twinkled. 'I've met many and seen much,' he
- said; 'but I haven't yet found any better or quieter or forbearinger
- people than the Brethren and Sistern of the Moravian Church in
- Philadelphia. Nor will I ever forget my first Sunday - the service
- was in English that week - with the smell of the flowers coming in
- from Pastor Meder's garden where the big peach tree is, and me
- looking at all the clean strangeness and thinking of 'tween decks
- on the Embuscade only six days ago. Being a boy, it seemed to me
- it had lasted for ever, and was going on for ever. But I didn't
- know Toby then. As soon as the dancing clock struck midnight
- that Sunday - I was lying under the spinet - I heard Toby's fiddle.
- He'd just done his supper, which he always took late and heavy.
- "Gert," says he, "get the horses. Liberty and Independence for
- Ever! The flowers appear upon the earth, and the time of the
- singing of birds is come. We are going to my country seat in
- Lebanon."
-
- 'I rubbed my eyes, and fetched 'em out of the "Buck" stables.
- Red Jacket was there saddling his, and when I'd packed the
- saddle-bags we three rode up Race Street to the Ferry by starlight.
- So we went travelling. It's a kindly, softly country there, back of
- Philadelphia among the German towns, Lancaster way. Little
- houses and bursting big barns, fat cattle, fat women, and all as
- peaceful as Heaven might be if they farmed there. Toby sold
- medicines out of his saddlebags, and gave the French war-news to
- folk along the roads. Him and his long-hilted umberell was as
- well known as the stage-coaches. He took orders for that famous
- Seneca Oil which he had the secret of from Red Jacket's Indians,
- and he slept in friends' farmhouses, but he would shut all the
- windows; so Red Jacket and me slept outside. There's nothing to
- hurt except snakes - and they slip away quick enough if you
- thrash in the bushes.'
-
- 'I'd have liked that!' said Dan.
-
- 'I'd no fault to find with those days. In the cool o' the morning
- the cat-bird sings. He's something to listen to. And there's a smell
- of wild grape-vine growing in damp hollows which you drop
- into, after long rides in the heat, which is beyond compare for
- sweetness. So's the puffs out of the pine woods of afternoons.
- Come sundown, the frogs strike up, and later on the fireflies
- dance in the corn. Oh me, the fireflies in the corn! We were a week
- or ten days on the road, tacking from one place to another - such
- as Lancaster, Bethlehem-Ephrata - "thou Bethlehem-Ephrata."
- No odds - I loved the going about. And so we jogged 'into dozy
- little Lebanon by the Blue Mountains, where Toby had a cottage
- and a garden of all fruits. He come north every year for this
- wonderful Seneca Oil the Seneca Indians made for him. They'd
- never sell to any one else, and he doctored 'em with von Swieten
- pills, which they valued more than their own oil. He could do
- what he chose with them, and, of course, he tried to make them
- Moravians. The Senecas are a seemly, quiet people, and they'd
- had trouble enough from white men - American and English -
- during the wars, to keep 'em in that walk. They lived on a
- Reservation by themselves away off by their lake. Toby took me
- up there, and they treated me as if I was their own blood brother.
- Red Jacket said the mark of my bare feet in the dust was just like an
- Indian's and my style of walking was similar. I know I took to
- their ways all over.'
-
- 'Maybe the gipsy drop in your blood helped you?' said Puck.
-
- 'Sometimes I think it did,' Pharaoh went on. 'Anyhow, Red
- Jacket and Cornplanter, the other Seneca chief, they let me be
- adopted into the tribe. It's only a compliment, of course, but
- Toby was angry when I showed up with my face painted. They
- gave me a side-name which means "Two Tongues," because,
- d'ye see, I talked French and English.
-
- 'They had their own opinions (I've heard 'em) about the French
- and the English, and the Americans. They'd suffered from all of
- 'em during the wars, and they only wished to be left alone. But
- they thought a heap of the President of the United States. Cornplanter
- had had dealings with him in some French wars out West
- when General Washington was only a lad. His being President
- afterwards made no odds to 'em. They always called him Big
- Hand, for he was a large-fisted man, and he was all of their notion
- of a white chief. Cornplanter 'ud sweep his blanket round him,
- and after I'd filled his pipe he'd begin - "In the old days, long ago,
- when braves were many and blankets were few, Big Hand said-"
- If Red Jacket agreed to the say-so he'd trickle a little smoke out of
- the corners of his mouth. If he didn't, he'd blow through his
- nostrils. Then Cornplanter 'ud stop and Red Jacket 'ud take on.
- Red Jacket was the better talker of the two. I've laid and listened to
- 'em for hours. Oh! they knew General Washington well. Cornplanter
- used to meet him at Epply's - the great dancing-place in
- the city before District Marshal William Nichols bought it. They
- told me he was always glad to see 'em, and he'd hear 'em out to
- the end if they had anything on their minds. They had a good deal
- in those days. I came at it by degrees, after I was adopted into the
- tribe. The talk up in Lebanon and everywhere else that summer
- was about the French war with England and whether the United
- States 'ud join in with France or make a peace treaty with
- England. Toby wanted peace so as he could go about the Reservation
- buying his oils. But most of the white men wished for war,
- and they was angry because the President wouldn't give the sign
- for it. The newspaper said men was burning Guy Fawkes images
- of General Washington and yelling after him in the streets of
- Philadelphia. You'd have been astonished what those two fine old
- chiefs knew of the ins and outs of such matters. The little I've
- learned of politics I picked up from Cornplanter and Red Jacket
- on the Reservation. Toby used to read the Aurora newspaper. He
- was what they call a "Democrat," though our Church is against
- the Brethren concerning themselves with politics.'
-
- 'I hate politics, too,' said Una, and Pharaoh laughed.
-
- 'I might ha' guessed it,' he said. 'But here's something that isn't
- politics. One hot evening late in August, Toby was reading the
- newspaper on the stoop and Red Jacket was smoking under a
- peach tree and I was fiddling. Of a sudden Toby drops his Aurora.
-
- '"I am an oldish man, too fond of my own comforts," he says.
- "I will go to the Church which is in Philadelphia. My brother,
- lend me a spare pony. I must be there tomorrow night."
-
- '"Good!" says Red Jacket, looking at the sun. "My brother
- shall be there. I will ride with him and bring back the ponies.
-
- 'I went to pack the saddle-bags. Toby had cured me of asking
- questions. He stopped my fiddling if I did. Besides, Indians don't
- ask questions much and I wanted to be like 'em.
-
- 'When the horses were ready I jumped up.
-
- '"Get off," says Toby. "Stay and mind the cottage till I come
- back. The Lord has laid this on me, not on you. I wish He
- hadn't."
-
- 'He powders off down the Lancaster road, and I sat on the
- doorstep wondering after him. When I picked up the paper to
- wrap his fiddle-strings in, I spelled out a piece about the yellow
- fever being in Philadelphia so dreadful every one was running
- away. I was scared, for I was fond of Toby. We never said much
- to each other, but we fiddled together, and music's as good as
- talking to them that understand.'
-
- 'Did Toby die of yellow fever?'Una asked.
-
- 'Not him! There's justice left in the world still. He went down
- to the City and bled 'em well again in heaps. He sent back word
- by Red Jacket that, if there was war or he died, I was to bring the
- oils along to the City, but till then I was to go on working in the
- garden and Red Jacket was to see me do it. Down at heart all
- Indians reckon digging a squaw's business, and neither him nor
- Cornplanter, when he relieved watch, was a hard task-Master.
- We hired a nigger-boy to do our work, and a lazy grinning
- runagate he was. When I found Toby didn't die the minute he
- reached town, why, boylike, I took him off my mind and went
- with my Indians again. Oh! those days up north at Canasedago,
- running races and gambling with the Senecas, or bee-hunting 'in
- the woods, or fishing in the lake.' Pharaoh sighed and looked
- across the water. 'But it's best,' he went on suddenly, 'after the
- first frosts. You roll out o' your blanket and find every leaf left
- green over night turned red and yellow, not by trees at a time, but
- hundreds and hundreds of miles of 'em, like sunsets splattered
- upside down. On one of such days - the maples was flaming
- scarlet and gold, and the sumach bushes were redder - Cornplanter
- and Red Jacket came out in full war-dress, making the
- very leaves look silly: feathered war-bonnets, yellow doeskin
- leggings, fringed and tasselled, red horse-blankets, and their
- bridles feathered and shelled and beaded no bounds. I thought it
- was war against the British till I saw their faces weren't painted,
- and they only carried wrist-whips. Then I hummed "Yankee
- Doodle" at 'em. They told me they was going to visit Big Hand
- and find out for sure whether he meant to join the French in
- fighting the English or make a peace treaty with England. I
- reckon those two would ha' gone out on the war-path at a nod
- from Big Hand, but they knew well, if there was war 'twixt
- England and the United States, their tribe 'ud catch it from both
- parties same as in all the other wars. They asked me to come along
- and hold the ponies. That puzzled me, because they always put
- their ponies up at the "Buck" or Epply's when they went to see
- General Washington in the city, and horse-holding is a nigger's
- job. Besides, I wasn't exactly dressed for it.'
-
- 'D'you mean you were dressed like an Indian?'Dan demanded.
-
- Pharaoh looked a little abashed. 'This didn't happen at
- Lebanon,' he said, 'but a bit farther north, on the Reservation; and
- at that particular moment of time, so far as blanket, hair-band,
- moccasins, and sunburn went, there wasn't much odds 'twix' me
- and a young Seneca buck. You may laugh'- he smoothed down
- his long-skirted brown coat -'but I told you I took to their ways
- all over. I said nothing, though I was bursting to let out the
- war-whoop like the young men had taught me.'
-
- 'No, and you don't let out one here, either,' said Puck before
- Dan could ask. 'Go on, Brother Square-toes.'
-
- 'We went on.' Pharaoh's narrow dark eyes gleamed and
- danced. 'We went on - forty, fifty miles a day, for days on end -
- we three braves. And how a great tall Indian a-horse-back can
- carry his war-bonnet at a canter through thick timber without
- brushing a feather beats me! My silly head was banged often
- enough by low branches, but they slipped through like running
- elk. We had evening hymn-singing every night after they'd
- blown their pipe-smoke to the quarters of heaven. Where did we
- go? I'll tell you, but don't blame me if you're no wiser. We took
- the old war-trail from the end of the Lake along the East
- Susquehanna through the Nantego country, right down to Fort
- Shamokin on the Senachse river. We crossed the Juniata by Fort
- Granville, got into Shippensberg over the hills by the Ochwick
- trail, and then to Williams Ferry (it's a bad one). From Williams
- Ferry, across the Shanedore, over the Blue Mountains, through
- Ashby's Gap, and so south-east by south from there, till we found
- the President at the back of his own plantations. I'd hate to be
- trailed by Indians in earnest. They caught him like a partridge on a
- stump. After we'd left our ponies, we scouted forward through a
- woody piece, and, creeping slower and slower, at last if my
- moccasins even slipped Red Jacket 'ud turn and frown. I heard
- voices - Monsieur Genet's for choice - long before I saw anything,
- and we pulled up at the edge of a clearing where some
- niggers in grey-and-red liveries were holding horses, and half-a-
- dozen gentlemen - but one was Genet - were talking among felled
- timber. I fancy they'd come to see Genet a piece on his road, for
- his portmantle was with him. I hid in between two logs as near to
- the company as I be to that old windlass there. I didn't need
- anybody to show me Big Hand. He stood up, very still, his legs a
- little apart, listening to Genet, that French Ambassador, which
- never had more manners than a Bosham tinker. Genet was as
- good as ordering him to declare war on England at once. I had
- heard that clack before on the Embuscade. He said he'd stir up the
- whole United States to have war with England, whether Big
- Hand liked it or not.
-
- 'Big Hand heard him out to the last end. I looked behind me,
- and my two chiefs had vanished like smoke. Says Big Hand,
- "That is very forcibly put, Monsieur Genet -"
-
- '"Citizen - citizen!" the fellow spits in. "I, at least, am
- a Republican!"
-
- "Citizen Genet," he says, "you may be sure it will receive my
- fullest consideration." This seemed to take Citizen Genet back a
- piece. He rode off grumbling, and never gave his nigger a penny.
- No gentleman!
-
- 'The others all assembled round Big Hand then, and, in their
- way, they said pretty much what Genet had said. They put it to
- him, here was France and England at war, in a manner of speaking,
- right across the United States' stomach, and paying no
- regards to any one. The French was searching American ships on
- pretence they was helping England, but really for to steal the
- goods. The English was doing the same, only t'other way round,
- and besides searching, they was pressing American citizens into
- their Navy to help them fight France, on pretence that those
- Americans was lawful British subjects. His gentlemen put this
- very clear to Big Hand. It didn't look to them, they said, as though
- the United States trying to keep out of the fight was any advantage
- to her, because she only catched it from both French and
- English. They said that nine out of ten good Americans was crazy
- to fight the English then and there. They wouldn't say whether
- that was right or wrong; they only wanted Big Hand to turn it
- over in his mind. He did - for a while. I saw Red Jacket and
- Cornplanter watching him from the far side of the clearing, and
- how they had slipped round there was another mystery. Then Big
- Hand drew himself up, and he let his gentlemen have it.'
-
- 'Hit 'em?' Dan asked.
-
- 'No, nor yet was it what you might call swearing. He - he
- blasted 'em with his natural speech. He asked them half-a-dozen
- times over whether the United States had enough armed ships for
- any shape or sort of war with any one. He asked 'em, if they
- thought she had those ships, to give him those ships, and they
- looked on the ground, as if they expected to find 'em there. He put
- it to 'em whether, setting ships aside, their country - I reckon he
- gave 'em good reasons - whether the United States was ready or
- able to face a new big war; she having but so few years back
- wound up one against England, and being all holds full of her
- own troubles. As I said, the strong way he laid it all before 'em
- blasted 'em, and when he'd done it was like a still in the woods
- after a storm. A little man - but they all looked little - pipes up like
- a young rook in a blowed-down nest, "Nevertheless, General, it
- seems you will be compelled to fight England." Quick Big Hand
- wheeled on him, "And is there anything in my past which makes
- you think I am averse to fighting Great Britain?"
-
- 'Everybody laughed except him. "Oh, General, you mistake
- us entirely!" they says. "I trust so," he says. "But I know my
- duty. We must have peace with England."
-
- '"At any price?" says the man with the rook's voice.
-
- '"At any price," says he, word by word. "Our ships will be
- searched - our citizens will be pressed, but -"
-
- '"Then what about the Declaration of Independence?" says one.
-
- '"Deal with facts, not fancies," says Big Hand. "The United
- States are in no position to fight England."
-
- '"But think of public opinion," another one starts up. "The
- feeling in Philadelphia alone is at fever heat."
-
- 'He held up one of his big hands. "Gentlemen," he says - slow
- he spoke, but his voice carried far - "I have to think of our
- country. Let me assure you that the treaty with Great Britain will
- be made though every city in the Union burn me in effigy."
-
- '"At any price?" the actor-like chap keeps on croaking.
-
- '"The treaty must be made on Great Britain's own terms.
- What else can I do?"
- 'He turns his back on 'em and they looked at each other and
- slinked off to the horses, leaving him alone: and then I saw he was
- an old man. Then Red Jacket and Cornplanter rode down the
- clearing from the far end as though they had just chanced along.
- Back went Big Hand's shoulders, up went his head, and he
- stepped forward one single pace with a great deep Hough! so
- pleased he was. That was a statelified meeting to behold - three
- big men, and two of 'em looking like jewelled images among the
- spattle of gay-coloured leaves. I saw my chiefs' war-bonnets
- sinking together, down and down. Then they made the sign
- which no Indian makes outside of the Medicine Lodges - a sweep
- of the right hand just clear of the dust and an inbend of the left
- knee at the same time, and those proud eagle feathers almost
- touched his boot-top.'
-
- 'What did it mean?' said Dan.
-
- 'Mean!' Pharaoh cried. 'Why it's what you - what we - it's the
- Sachems' way of sprinkling the sacred corn-meal in front of - oh!
- it's a piece of Indian compliment really, and it signifies that you
- are a very big chief.
-
- 'Big Hand looked down on 'em. First he says quite softly, "My
- brothers know it is not easy to be a chief." Then his voice grew.
- "My children," says he, "what is in your minds?"
-
- 'Says Cornplanter, "We came to ask whether there will be war
- with King George's men, but we have heard what our Father has
- said to his chiefs. We will carry away that talk in our hearts to tell
- to our people."
-
- '"No," says Big Hand. "Leave all that talk behind - it was
- between white men only - but take this message from me to your
- people - 'There will be no war.'"
-
- 'His gentlemen were waiting, so they didn't delay him-, only
- Cornplanter says, using his old side-name, "Big Hand, did you
- see us among the timber just now?"
-
- '"Surely," says he. "You taught me to look behind trees when
- we were both young." And with that he cantered off.
-
- 'Neither of my chiefs spoke till we were back on our ponies
- again and a half-hour along the home-trail. Then Cornplanter
- says to Red Jacket, "We will have the Corn-dance this year. There
- will be no war." And that was all there was to it.'
-
- Pharaoh stood up as though he had finished.
-
- 'Yes,' said Puck, rising too. 'And what came out of it in the
- long run?'
-
- 'Let me get at my story my own way,'was the answer. 'Look!
- it's later than I thought. That Shoreham smack's thinking of her supper.'
- The children looked across the darkening Channel. A smack
- had hoisted a lantern and slowly moved west where Brighton pier
- lights ran out in a twinkling line. When they turned round The
- Gap was empty behind them.
-
- 'I expect they've packed our trunks by now,' said Dan. 'This
- time tomorrow we'll be home.'
-
-
-
- If -
-
- If you can keep your head when all about you
- Are losing theirs and blaming it on you;
- If you can trust yourself when all men doubt you,
- But make allowance for their doubting too;
- If you can wait and not be tired by waiting,
- Or being lied about, don't deal in lies,
- Or being hated, don't give way to hating,
- And yet don't look too good, nor talk too wise;
-
- If you can dream - and not make dreams your master;
- If you can think - and not make thoughts your aim,
- If you can meet with Triumph and Disaster
- And treat those two impostors just the same;
- If you can bear to hear the truth you've spoken
- Twisted by knaves to make a trap for fools,
- Or watch the things you gave your life to, broken,
- And stoop and build 'em up with worn-out tools;
-
- If you can make one heap of all your winnings
- And risk it on one turn of pitch-and-toss,
- And lose, and start again at your beginnings
- And never breathe a word about your loss;
- If you can force your heart and nerve and sinew
- To serve your turn long after they are gone,
- And so hold on when there is nothing in you
- Except the Will which says to them: 'Hold on!'
-
- If you can talk with crowds and keep your virtue,
- Or walk with Kings - nor lose the common touch,
- If neither foes nor loving friends can hurt you,
- If all men count with you, but none too much;
- If you can fill the unforgiving minute
- With sixty seconds' worth of distance run,
- Yours is the Earth and everything that's in it,
- And - which is more - you'll be a Man, my son!
-
-
-
-
- 'A PRIEST IN SPITE OF HIMSELF'
-
-
-
- A St Helena Lullaby
-
-
- How far is St Helena from a little child at play?
- What makes you want to wander there with all the world between?
- Oh, Mother, call your son again or else he'll run away.
- (No one thinks of winter when the grass is green!)
-
- How far is St Helena from a fight in Paris street?
- I haven't time to answer now - the men are falling fast.
- The guns begin to thunder, and the drums begin to beat
- (If you take the first step you will take the last!)
-
- How far is St Helena from the field at Austerlitz?
- You couldn't hear me if I told - so loud the cannons roar.
- But not so far for people who are living by their wits.
- ('Gay go up' means 'gay go down' the wide world o'er!)
-
- How far is St Helena from an Emperor of France?
- I cannot see - I cannot tell - the crowns they dazzle so.
- The Kings sit down to dinner, and the Queens stand up to dance.
- (After open weather you may look for snow!)
-
- How far is St Helena from the Capes of Trafalgar?
- A longish way - a longish way - with ten year more to run.
- It's South across the water underneath a setting star.
- (What you cannot finish you must leave undone!)
-
- How far is St Helena from the Beresina ice?
- An ill way - a chill way - the ice begins to crack.
- But not so far for gentlemen who never took advice.
- (When you can't go forward you must e'en come back!)
-
- How far is St Helena from the field of Waterloo?
- A near way - a clear way - the ship will take you soon.
- A pleasant place for gentlemen with little left to do.
- (Morning never tries you till the afternoon!)
-
- How far from St Helena to the Gate of Heaven's Grace?
- That no one knows - that no one knows - and no one ever will.
- But fold your hands across your heart and cover up your face,
- And after all your trapesings, child, lie still!
-
-
-
- 'A Priest in Spite of Himself'
-
-
- The day after they came home from the sea-side they set out on a
- tour of inspection to make sure everything was as they had left it.
- Soon they discovered that old Hobden had blocked their best
- hedge-gaps with stakes and thorn-bundles, and had trimmed up
- the hedges where the blackberries were setting.
-
- 'it can't be time for the gipsies to come along,' said Una. 'Why,
- it was summer only the other day!'
-
- 'There's smoke in Low Shaw!' said Dan, sniffing. 'Let's make sure!'
-
- They crossed the fields towards the thin line of blue smoke that
- leaned above the hollow of Low Shaw which lies beside the
- King's Hill road. It used to be an old quarry till somebody planted
- it, and you can look straight down into it from the edge of Banky Meadow.
-
- 'I thought so,' Dan whispered, as they came up to the fence at
- the edge of the larches. A gipsy-van - not the show-man's sort,
- but the old black kind, with little windows high up and a baby-
- gate across the door - was getting ready to leave. A man was
- harnessing the horses; an old woman crouched over the ashes of a
- fire made out of broken fence-rails; and a girl sat on the van-steps
- singing to a baby on her lap. A wise-looking, thin dog snuffed at a
- patch of fur on the ground till the old woman put it carefully in the
- middle of the fire. The girl reached back inside the van and tossed
- her a paper parcel. This was laid on the fire too, and they smelt
- singed feathers.
-
- 'Chicken feathers!' said Dan. 'I wonder if they are old Hobden's.'
-
- Una sneezed. The dog growled and crawled to the girl's feet,
- the old woman fanned the fire with her hat, while the man led the
- horses up to the shafts, They all moved as quickly and quietly as
- snakes over moss.
-
- 'Ah!' said the girl. 'I'll teach you!' She beat the dog, who
- seemed to expect it.
-
- 'Don't do that,' Una called down. 'It wasn't his fault.'
-
- 'How do you know what I'm beating him for?' she answered.
-
- 'For not seeing us,' said Dan. 'He was standing right in the
- smoke, and the wind was wrong for his nose, anyhow.'
-
- The girl stopped beating the dog, and the old woman fanned
- faster than ever.
-
- 'You've fanned some of your feathers out of the fire,' said Una.
- 'There's a tail-feather by that chestnut-tot.'
-
- 'What of it?' said the old woman, as she grabbed it.
-
- 'Oh, nothing!' said Dan. 'Only I've heard say that tail-feathers
- are as bad as the whole bird, sometimes.'
-
- That was a saying of Hobden's about pheasants. Old Hobden
- always burned all feather and fur before he sat down to eat.
-
- 'Come on, mother,' the man whispered. The old woman
- climbed into the van, and the horses drew it out of the deep-rutted
- shaw on to the hard road.
-
- The girl waved her hands and shouted something they could
- not catch.
-
- 'That was gipsy for "Thank you kindly, Brother and Sister,"'
- said Pharaoh Lee.
-
- He was standing behind them, his fiddle under his arm.
- 'Gracious, you startled me!' said Una.
-
- 'You startled old Priscilla Savile,' Puck called from below them.
- 'Come and sit by their fire. She ought to have put it out before
- they left.'
-
- They dropped down the ferny side of the shaw. Una raked the
- ashes together, Dan found a dead wormy oak branch that burns
- without flame, and they watched the smoke while Pharaoh
- played a curious wavery air.
-
- 'That's what the girl was humming to the baby,' said Una.
-
- 'I know it,'he nodded, and went on:
-
- 'Ai Lumai, Lumai, Lumai! Luludia!
- Ai Luludia!'
-
-
- He passed from one odd tune to another, and quite forgot the
- children. At last Puck asked him to go on with his adventures in
- Philadelphia and among the Seneca Indians.
-
- 'I'm telling it,' he said, staring straight in front of him as he
- played. 'Can't you hear?'
-
- 'Maybe, but they can't. Tell it aloud,' said Puck.
-
- Pharaoh shook himself, laid his fiddle beside him, and began:
-
- 'I'd left Red Jacket and Cornplanter riding home with me after
- Big Hand had said that there wouldn't be any war. That's all there
- was to it. We believed Big Hand and we went home again - we
- three braves. When we reached Lebanon we found Toby at the
- cottage with his waistcoat a foot too big for him - so hard he had
- worked amongst the yellow-fever people. He beat me for running
- off with the Indians, but 'twas worth it - I was glad to see
- him, - and when we went back to Philadelphia for the winter, and
- I was told how he'd sacrificed himself over sick people in the
- yellow fever, I thought the world and all of him. No, I didn't
- neither. I'd thought that all along. That yellow fever must have
- been something dreadful. Even in December people had no more
- than begun to trinkle back to town. Whole houses stood empty
- and the niggers was robbing them out. But I can't call to mind
- that any of the Moravian Brethren had died. It seemed like they
- had just kept on with their own concerns, and the good Lord He'd
- just looked after 'em. That was the winter - yes, winter of
- 'Ninety-three - the Brethren bought a stove for the church. Toby
- spoke in favour of it because the cold spoiled his fiddle hand, but
- many thought stove-heat not in the Bible, and there was yet a
- third party which always brought hickory coal foot-warmers to
- service and wouldn't speak either way. They ended by casting the
- Lot for it, which is like pitch-and-toss. After my summer with the
- Senecas, church-stoves didn't highly interest me, so I took to
- haunting round among the French emigres which Philadelphia was
- full of. My French and my fiddling helped me there, d'ye see.
- They come over in shiploads from France, where, by what I made
- out, every one was killing every one else by any means, and they
- spread 'emselves about the city - mostly in Drinker's Alley and
- Elfrith's Alley - and they did odd jobs till times should mend. But
- whatever they stooped to, they were gentry and kept a cheerful
- countenance, and after an evening's fiddling at one of their poor
- little proud parties, the Brethren seemed old-fashioned. Pastor
- Meder and Brother Adam Goos didn't like my fiddling for hire,
- but Toby said it was lawful in me to earn my living by exercising
- my talents. He never let me be put upon.
-
- 'In February of 'Ninety-four - No, March it must have been,
- because a new Ambassador called Faucher had come from France,
- with no more manners than Genet the old one - in March, Red
- Jacket came in from the Reservation bringing news of all kind
- friends there. I showed him round the city, and we saw General
- Washington riding through a crowd of folk that shouted for war
- with England. They gave him quite rough music, but he looked
- 'twixt his horse's ears and made out not to notice. His stirrup
- brished Red Jacket's elbow, and Red Jacket whispered up, "My
- brother knows it is not easy to be a chief." Big Hand shot just one
- look at him and nodded. Then there was a scuffle behind us over
- some one who wasn't hooting at Washington loud enough to
- please the people. We went away to be out of the fight. Indians
- won't risk being hit.'
-
- 'What do they do if they are?' Dan asked.
-
- 'Kill, of course. That's why they have such proper manners.
- Well, then, coming home by Drinker's Alley to get a new shirt
- which a French Vicomte's lady was washing to take the stiff out of
- (I'm always choice in my body-linen) a lame Frenchman pushes a
- paper of buttons at us. He hadn't long landed in the United States,
- and please would we buy. He sure-ly was a pitiful scrattel - his
- coat half torn off, his face cut, but his hands steady; so I knew
- it wasn't drink. He said his name was Peringuey, and he'd been
- knocked about in the crowd round the Stadt - Independence Hall.
- One thing leading to another we took him up to Toby's rooms,
- same as Red Jacket had taken me the year before. The compliments
- he paid to Toby's Madeira wine fairly conquered the old
- man, for he opened a second bottle and he told this Monsieur
- Peringuey all about our great stove dispute in the church. I
- remember Pastor Meder and Brother Adam Goos dropped 'in,
- and although they and Toby were direct opposite sides regarding
- stoves, yet this Monsieur Peringuey he made 'em feel as if he
- thought each one was in the right of it. He said he had been a
- clergyman before he had to leave France. He admired at Toby's
- fiddling, and he asked if Red Jacket, sitting by the spinet, was a
- simple Huron. Senecas aren't Hurons, they're Iroquois, of
- course, and Toby told him so. Well, then, in due time he arose
- and left in a style which made us feel he'd been favouring us,
- instead of us feeding him. I've never seen that so strong before - in
- a man. We all talked him over but couldn't make head or tail of
- him, and Red Jacket come out to walk with me to the French
- quarter where I was due to fiddle at a party. Passing Drinker's
- Alley again we saw a naked window with a light in it, and there
- sat our button-selling Monsieur Peringuey throwing dice all
- alone, right hand against left.
-
- 'Says Red Jacket, keeping back in the dark, "Look at his face!"
-
- 'I was looking. I protest to you I wasn't frightened like I was
- when Big Hand talked to his gentlemen. I - I only looked, and I
- wondered that even those dead dumb dice 'ud dare to fall different
- from what that face wished. It - it was a face!
-
- '"He is bad," says Red Jacket. "But he is a great chief. The
- French have sent away a great chief. I thought so when he told us
- his lies. Now I know."
-
- 'i had to go on to the party, so I asked him to call round for me
- afterwards and we'd have hymn-singing at Toby's as usual.
- "No," he says. "Tell Toby I am not Christian tonight. All
- Indian." He had those fits sometimes. I wanted to know more
- about Monsieur Peringuey, and the emigre party was the very
- place to find out. It's neither here nor there, of course, but those
- French emigre parties they almost make you cry. The men that
- you bought fruit of in Market Street, the hairdressers and fencing-
- masters and French teachers, they turn back again by candlelight
- to what they used to be at home, and you catch their real names.
- There wasn't much room in the washhouse, so I sat on top of the
- copper and played 'em the tunes they called for - "Si le Roi m'avait
- donne," and such nursery stuff. They cried sometimes. It hurt me
- to take their money afterwards, indeed it did. And there I found
- out about Monsieur Peringuey. He was a proper rogue too! None
- of 'em had a good word for him except the Marquise that kept the
- French boarding-house on Fourth Street. I made out that his real
- name was the Count Talleyrand de Perigord - a priest right
- enough, but sorely come down in the world. He'd been King
- Louis' Ambassador to England a year or two back, before the
- French had cut off King Louis' head; and, by what I heard, that
- head wasn't hardly more than hanging loose before he'd run back
- to Paris and prevailed on Danton, the very man which did the
- murder, to send him back to England again as Ambassador of the
- French Republic! That was too much for the English, so they
- kicked him out by Act of Parliament, and he'd fled to the
- Americas without money or friends or prospects. I'm telling you
- the talk in the washhouse. Some of 'em was laughing over it. Says
- the French Marquise, "My friends, you laugh too soon. That man
- 'll be on the winning side before any of us."
-
- '"I did not know you were so fond of priests, Marquise," says
- the Vicomte. His lady did my washing, as I've told you.
-
- '"I have my reasons," says the Marquise. "He sent my uncle
- and my two brothers to Heaven by the little door," - that was one
- of the emigre names for the guillotine. "He will be on the winning
- side if it costs him the blood of every friend he has in the world."
-
- '"Then what does he want here?" says one of 'em. "We have
- all lost our game."
-
- '"My faith!" says the Marquise. "He will find out, if any one
- can, whether this canaille of a Washington means to help us to
- fight England. Genet" (that was my Ambassador in the Embuscade)
- "has failed and gone off disgraced; Faucher" (he was the new man)
- "hasn't done any better, but our Abbe will find out, and he will
- make his profit out of the news. Such a man does not fall."
-
- '"He begins unluckily," says the Vicomte. "He was set upon
- today in the street for not hooting your Washington." They all
- laughed again, and one remarks, "How does the poor devil keep
- himself?"
-
- 'He must have slipped in through the washhouse door, for he
- flits past me and joins 'em, cold as ice.
-
- '"One does what one can," he says. "I sell buttons. And
- you, Marquise?"
-
- '"I?" - she waves her poor white hands all burned - "I am a
- cook - a very bad one - at your service, Abbe. We were just
- talking about you."
-
- They didn't treat him like they talked of him. They backed off
- and stood still.
-
- '"I have missed something, then," he says. "But I spent this
- last hour playing - only for buttons, Marquise - against a noble
- savage, the veritable Huron himself."
-
- '"You had your usual luck, I hope?" she says.
-
- '"Certainly," he says. "I cannot afford to lose even buttons in
- these days."
-
- '"Then I suppose the child of nature does not know that your
- dice are usually loaded, Father Tout-a-tous," she continues. I
- don't know whether she meant to accuse him of cheating. He
- only bows.
- '"Not yet, Mademoiselle Cunegonde," he says, and goes on
- to make himself agreeable to the rest of the company. And that
- was how I found out our Monsieur Peringuey was Count Charles
- Maurice Talleyrand de Perigord.'
-
- Pharaoh stopped, but the children said nothing.
-
- 'You've heard of him?' said Pharaoh.
-
- Una shook her head.
- 'Was Red Jacket the Indian he played dice with?' Dan asked.
-
- 'He was. Red Jacket told me the next time we met. I asked if the
- lame man had cheated. Red Jacket said no - he had played quite
- fair and was a master player. I allow Red Jacket knew. I've seen
- him, on the Reservation, play himself out of everything he had
- and in again. Then I told Red Jacket all I'd heard at the party
- concerning Talleyrand.
-
- '"I was right," he says. "I saw the man's war-face when he
- thought he was alone. That's why I played him. I played him face
- to face. He's a great chief. Do they say why he comes here?"
-
- '"They say he comes to find out if Big Hand makes war against
- the English," I said.
-
- 'Red Jacket grunted. "Yes," he says. "He asked me that too. If
- he had been a small chief I should have lied. But he is a great chief.
- He knew I was a chief, so I told him the truth. I told him what Big
- Hand said to Cornplanter and me in the clearing - 'There will be
- no war.' I could not see what he thought. I could not see behind
- his face. But he is a great chief. He will believe."
-
- '"Will he believe that Big Hand can keep his people back from
- war?" I said, thinking of the crowds that hooted Big Hand
- whenever he rode out.
-
- '"He is as bad as Big Hand is good, but he is not as strong as
- Big Hand," says Red Jacket. "When he talks with Big Hand he
- will feel this in his heart. The French have sent away a great chief.
- Presently he will go back and make them afraid."
-
- 'Now wasn't that comical? The French woman that knew him
- and owed all her losses to him; the Indian that picked him up, cut
- and muddy on the street, and played dice with him; they neither
- of 'em doubted that Talleyrand was something by himself -
- appearances notwithstanding.'
-
- 'And was he something by himself?' asked Una.
-
- Pharaoh began to laugh, but stopped. 'The way I look at it,'he
- said, 'Talleyrand was one of just three men in this world who are
- quite by themselves. Big Hand I put first, because I've seen him.'
- 'Ay,' said Puck. 'I'm sorry we lost him out of Old England.
- Who d'you put second?'
-
- 'Talleyrand: maybe because I've seen him too,' said Pharaoh.
-
- 'Who's third?'said Puck.
-
- 'Boney - even though I've seen him.'
-
- 'Whew!' said Puck. 'Every man has his own weights and
- measures, but that's queer reckoning.'
- 'Boney?' said Una. 'You don't mean you've ever met
- Napoleon Bonaparte?'
-
- 'There, I knew you wouldn't have patience with the rest of my
- tale after hearing that! But wait a minute. Talleyrand he come
- round to Hundred and Eighteen in a day or two to thank Toby for
- his kindness. I didn't mention the dice-playing, but I could see
- that Red Jacket's doings had made Talleyrand highly curious
- about Indians - though he would call him the Huron. Toby, as you
- may believe, was all holds full of knowledge concerning their
- manners and habits. He only needed a listener. The Brethren
- don't study Indians much till they join the Church, but Toby
- knew 'em wild. So evening after evening Talleyrand crossed his
- sound leg over his game one and Toby poured forth. Having been
- adopted into the Senecas I, naturally, kept still, but Toby 'ud call
- on me to back up some of his remarks, and by that means, and a
- habit he had of drawing you on in talk, Talleyrand saw I knew
- something of his noble savages too. Then he tried a trick. Coming
- back from an emigre party he turns into his little shop and puts it to
- me, laughing like, that I'd gone with the two chiefs on their visit
- to Big Hand. I hadn't told. Red Jacket hadn't told, and Toby, of
- course, didn't know. 'Twas just Talleyrand's guess. "Now," he
- says, my English and Red Jacket's French was so bad that I am
- not sure I got the rights of what the President really said to the
- unsophisticated Huron. Do me the favour of telling it again." I
- told him every word Red Jacket had told him and not one word
- more. I had my suspicions, having just come from an emigre party
- where the Marquise was hating and praising him as usual.
-
- '"Much obliged," he said. "But I couldn't gather from Red
- Jacket exactly what the President said to Monsieur Genet, or to
- his American gentlemen after Monsieur Genet had ridden away.
-
- 'I saw Talleyrand was guessing again, for Red Jacket hadn't
- told him a word about the white men's pow-wow.'
-
- 'Why hadn't he?' Puck asked.
-
- 'Because Red Jacket was a chief. He told Talleyrand what the
- President had said to him and Cornplanter; but he didn't repeat
- the talk, between the white men, that Big Hand ordered him to
- leave behind.
- 'Oh!' said Puck. 'I see. What did you do?'
-
- 'First I was going to make some sort of tale round it, but
- Talleyrand was a chief too. So I said, "As soon as I get Red
- Jacket's permission to tell that part of the tale, I'll be delighted to
- refresh your memory, Abbe." What else could I have done?
-
- '"Is that all?" he says, laughing. "Let me refresh your
- memory. In a month from now I can give you a hundred dollars
- for your account of the conversation."
-
- '"Make it five hundred, Abbe," I says.
- '"Five, then," says he.
-
- '"That will suit me admirably," I says. "Red Jacket will be in
- town again by then, and the moment he gives me leave I'll claim
- the money."
-
- 'He had a hard fight to be civil, but he come out smiling.
-
- '"Monsieur," he says, "I beg your pardon as sincerely as I
- envy the noble Huron your loyalty. Do me the honour to sit
- down while I explain."
-
- 'There wasn't another chair, so I sat on the button-box.
-
- 'He was a clever man. He had got hold of the gossip that the
- President meant to make a peace treaty with England at any cost.
- He had found out - from Genet, I reckon, who was with the
- President on the day the two chiefs met him. He'd heard that
- Genet had had a huff with the President and had ridden off leaving
- his business at loose ends. What he wanted - what he begged and
- blustered to know - was just the very words which the President
- had said to his gentlemen after Genet had left, concerning the
- peace treaty with England. He put it to me that in helping him to
- those very words I'd be helping three great countries as well as
- mankind. The room was as bare as the palm of your hand, but I
- couldn't laugh at him.
-
- '"I'm sorry," I says, when he wiped his forehead. "As soon as
- Red Jacket gives permission -"
-
- '"You don't believe me, then?" he cuts in.
- '"Not one little, little word, Abbe," I says; "except that you
- mean to be on the winning side. Remember, I've been fiddling to
- all your old friends for months."
-
- 'Well, then his temper fled him and he called me names.
-
- '"Wait a minute, ci-devant," I says at last. "I am half English
- and half French, but I am not the half of a man. I will tell thee
- something the Indian told me. Has thee seen the President?"
-
- '"Oh yes!" he sneers. "I had letters from the Lord Lansdowne
- to that estimable old man."
-
- '"Then," I says, "thee will understand. The Red Skin said that
- when thee has met the President thee will feel in thy heart he is a
- stronger man than thee."
-
- '"Go!" he whispers. "Before I kill thee, go."
-
- 'He looked like it. So I left him.'
-
- 'Why did he want to know so badly?' said Dan.
-
- 'The way I look at it is that if he had known for certain that
- Washington meant to make the peace treaty with England at any
- price, he'd ha' left old Faucher fumbling about in Philadelphia
- while he went straight back to France and told old Danton - "It's
- no good your wasting time and hopes on the United States,
- because she won't fight on our side - that I've proof of!" Then
- Danton might have been grateful and given Talleyrand a job,
- because a whole mass of things hang on knowing for sure who's
- your friend and who's your enemy. just think of us poor shop-
- keepers, for instance.'
-
- 'Did Red Jacket let you tell, when he came back?' Una asked.
-
- 'Of course not. He said, "When Cornplanter and I ask you
- what Big Hand said to the whites you can tell the Lame Chief. All
- that talk was left behind in the timber, as Big Hand ordered. Tell
- the Lame Chief there will be no war. He can go back to France
- with that word."
-
- 'Talleyrand and me hadn't met for a long time except at emigre
- parties. When I give him the message he just shook his head. He
- was sorting buttons in the shop.
-
- 'I cannot return to France with nothing better than the word
- of an unsophisticated savage," he says.
-
- '"Hasn't the President said anything to you?" I asked him.
-
- '"He has said everything that one in his position ought to say,
- but - but if only I had what he said to his Cabinet after Genet rode
- off I believe I could change Europe - the world, maybe."
- '"I'm sorry," I says. "Maybe you'll do that without my help."
-
- 'He looked at me hard. "Either you have unusual observation
- for one so young, or you choose to be insolent," he says.
-
- '"It was intended for a compliment," I says. "But no odds.
- We're off in a few days for our summer trip, and I've come to
- make my good-byes."
-
- '"I go on my travels too," he says. "If ever we meet again you
- may be sure I will do my best to repay what I owe you."
-
- '"Without malice, Abbe, I hope," I says.
-
- '"None whatever," says he. "Give my respects to your
- adorable Dr Pangloss" (that was one of his side-names for Toby)
- "and the Huron." I never could teach him the difference betwixt
- Hurons and Senecas.
-
- 'Then Sister Haga came in for a paper of what we call "pilly
- buttons," and that was the last I saw of Talleyrand in those parts.'
-
- 'But after that you met Napoleon, didn't you?' said Una.
- 'Wait Just a little, dearie. After that, Toby and I went to
- Lebanon and the Reservation, and, being older and knowing
- better how to manage him, I enjoyed myself well that summer
- with fiddling and fun. When we came back, the Brethren got after
- Toby because I wasn't learning any lawful trade, and he had hard
- work to save me from being apprenticed to Helmbold and Geyer
- the printers. 'Twould have ruined our music together, indeed it
- would. And when we escaped that, old Mattes Roush, the
- leather-breeches maker round the corner, took a notion I was cut
- out for skin-dressing. But we were rescued. Along towards
- Christmas there comes a big sealed letter from the Bank saying
- that a Monsieur Talleyrand had put five hundred dollars - a
- hundred pounds - to my credit there to use as I pleased. There was
- a little note from him inside - he didn't give any address - to thank
- me for past kindnesses and my believing in his future, which he
- said was pretty cloudy at the time of writing. I wished Toby to
- share the money. I hadn't done more than bring Talleyrand up to
- Hundred and Eighteen. The kindnesses were Toby's. But Toby
- said, "No! Liberty and Independence for ever. I have all my
- wants, my son." So I gave him a set of new fiddle-strings, and the
- Brethren didn't advise us any more. Only Pastor Meder he
- preached about the deceitfulness of riches, and Brother Adam
- Goos said if there was war the English 'ud surely shoot down the
- Bank. I knew there wasn't going to be any war, but I drew the
- money out and on Red Jacket's advice I put it into horse-flesh,
- which I sold to Bob Bicknell for the Baltimore stage-coaches.
- That way, I doubled my money inside the twelvemonth.'
- 'You gipsy! You proper gipsy!' Puck shouted.
-
- 'Why not? 'Twas fair buying and selling. Well, one thing
- leading to another, in a few years I had made the beginning of a
- worldly fortune and was in the tobacco trade.'
-
- 'Ah!' said Puck, suddenly. 'Might I inquire if you'd ever sent
- any news to your people in England - or in France?'
-
- 'O' course I had. I wrote regular every three months after I'd
- made money in the horse trade. We Lees don't like coming home
- empty-handed. If it's only a turnip or an egg, it's something. Oh
- yes, I wrote good and plenty to Uncle Aurette, and - Dad don't
- read very quickly - Uncle used to slip over Newhaven way and
- tell Dad what was going on in the tobacco trade.'
-
- 'I see -
-
- Aurettes and Lees -
- Like as two peas.
-
- Go on, Brother Square-toes,' said Puck. Pharaoh laughed and went on.
-
- 'Talleyrand he'd gone up in the world same as me. He'd sailed
- to France again, and was a great man in the Government there
- awhile, but they had to turn him out on account of some story
- about bribes from American shippers. All our poor emigres said he
- was surely finished this time, but Red Jacket and me we didn't
- think it likely, not unless he was quite dead. Big Hand had made
- his peace treaty with Great Britain, just as he said he would, and
- there was a roaring trade 'twixt England and the United States for
- such as 'ud take the risk of being searched by British and French
- men-o'-war. Those two was fighting, and just as his gentlemen
- told Big Hand 'ud happen - the United States was catching it
- from both. If an English man-o'-war met an American ship he'd
- press half the best men out of her, and swear they was British
- subjects. Most of 'em was! If a Frenchman met her he'd, likely,
- have the cargo out of her, swearing it was meant to aid and
- comfort the English; and if a Spaniard or a Dutchman met her -
- they was hanging on to England's coat-tails too - Lord only
- knows what they wouldn't do! It came over me that what I wanted
- in my tobacco trade was a fast-sailing ship and a man who could
- be French, English, or American at a pinch. Luckily I could lay
- my hands on both articles. So along towards the end of
- September in the year 'Ninety-nine I sailed from Philadelphia
- with a hundred and eleven hogshead o' good Virginia tobacco, in
- the brig BERTHE AURETTE, named after Mother's maiden name,
- hoping 'twould bring me luck, which she didn't - and yet she did.'
-
- 'Where was you bound for?' Puck asked.
-
- 'Er - any port I found handiest. I didn't tell Toby or the
- Brethren. They don't understand the ins and outs of the tobacco trade.'
-
- Puck coughed a small cough as he shifted a piece of wood with
- his bare foot.
-
- 'It's easy for you to sit and judge,' Pharaoh cried. 'But think o'
- what we had to put up with! We spread our wings and run across
- the broad Atlantic like a hen through a horse-fair. Even so, we
- was stopped by an English frigate, three days out. He sent a boat
- alongside and pressed seven able seamen. I remarked it was hard
- on honest traders, but the officer said they was fighting all
- creation and hadn't time to argue. The next English frigate we
- escaped with no more than a shot in our quarter. Then we was
- chased two days and a night by a French privateer, firing between
- squalls, and the dirty little English ten-gun brig which made him
- sheer off had the impudence to press another five of our men.
- That's how we reached to the chops of the Channel. Twelve good
- men pressed out of thirty-five; an eighteen-pound shot-hole close
- beside our rudder; our mainsail looking like spectacles where the
- Frenchman had hit us - and the Channel crawling with short-
- handed British cruisers. Put that in your pipe and smoke it next
- time you grumble at the price of tobacco!
-
- 'Well, then, to top it off, while we was trying to get at our
- leaks, a French lugger come swooping at us out o' the dusk. We
- warned him to keep away, but he fell aboard us, and up climbed
- his Jabbering red-caps. We couldn't endure any more - indeed we
- couldn't. We went at 'em with all we could lay hands on. It didn't
- last long. They was fifty odd to our twenty-three. Pretty soon I
- heard the cutlasses thrown down and some one bellowed for the
- sacri captain.
-
- '"Here I am!" I says. "I don't suppose it makes any odds to you
- thieves, but this is the United States brig BERTHE AURETTE."
-
- '"My aunt!" the man says, laughing. "Why is she named that?"
-
- '"Who's speaking?" I said. 'Twas too dark to see, but I
- thought I knew the voice.
-
- '"Enseigne de Vaisseau Estephe L'Estrange," he sings out, and
- then I was sure.
-
- '"Oh!" I says. "It's all in the family, I suppose, but you have
- done a fine day's work, Stephen."
-
- 'He whips out the binnacle-light and holds it to my face. He
- was young L'Estrange, my full cousin, that I hadn't seen since the
- night the smack sank off Telscombe Tye - six years before.
-
- '"Whew!" he says. "That's why she was named for Aunt
- Berthe, is it? What's your share in her, Pharaoh?"
-
- '"Only half owner, but the cargo's mine."
-
- '"That's bad," he says. "I'll do what I can, but you shouldn't
- have fought us."
- '"Steve," I says, "you aren't ever going to report our little
- fall-out as a fight! Why, a Revenue cutter 'ud laugh at it!"
-
- '"So'd I if I wasn't in the Republican Navy," he says. "But two
- of our men are dead, d'ye see, and I'm afraid I'll have to take you
-
- to the Prize Court at Le Havre."
-
- '"Will they condemn my 'baccy?" I asks.
-
- '"To the last ounce. But I was thinking more of the ship. She'd
- make a sweet little craft for the Navy if the Prize Court 'ud let me
- have her," he says.
-
- 'Then I knew there was no hope. I don't blame him - a man
- must consider his own interests, but nigh every dollar I had was
- in ship or cargo, and Steve kept on saying, "You shouldn't have
- fought us."
-
- 'Well, then, the lugger took us to Le Havre, and that being the
- one time we did want a British ship to rescue us, why, o' course
- we never saw one. My cousin spoke his best for us at the Prize
- Court. He owned he'd no right to rush alongside in the face o' the
- United States flag, but we couldn't get over those two men killed,
- d'ye see, and the Court condemned both ship and cargo. They
- was kind enough not to make us prisoners - only beggars - and
- young L'Estrange was given the BERTHE AURETTE to re-arm into the
- French Navy.
-
- '"I'll take you round to Boulogne," he says. "Mother and the
- rest'll be glad to see you, and you can slip over to Newhaven with
- Uncle Aurette. Or you can ship with me, like most o' your men,
- and take a turn at King George's loose trade. There's plenty
- pickings," he says.
-
- 'Crazy as I was, I couldn't help laughing.
-
- '"I've had my allowance of pickings and stealings," I says.
- "Where are they taking my tobacco?" 'Twas being loaded on to a barge.
-
- '"Up the Seine to be sold in Paris," he says. "Neither you nor I
- will ever touch a penny of that money."
-
- '"Get me leave to go with it," I says. "I'll see if there's justice to
- be gotten out of our American Ambassador."
-
- '"There's not much justice in this world," he says, "without a
- Navy." But he got me leave to go with the barge and he gave me
- some money. That tobacco was all I had, and I followed it like a
- hound follows a snatched bone. Going up the river I fiddled a little
- to keep my spirits up, as well as to make friends with the guard.
- They was only doing their duty. Outside o' that they were the
- reasonablest o' God's creatures. They never even laughed at me.
- So we come to Paris, by river, along in November, which the
- French had christened Brumaire. They'd given new names to all
- the months, and after such an outrageous silly piece o' business as
- that, they wasn't likely to trouble 'emselves with my rights and
- wrongs. They didn't. The barge was laid up below Notre Dame
- church in charge of a caretaker, and he let me sleep aboard after I'd
- run about all day from office to office, seeking justice and fair
- dealing, and getting speeches concerning liberty. None heeded
- me. Looking back on it I can't rightly blame 'em. I'd no money,
- my clothes was filthy mucked; I hadn't changed my linen in
- weeks, and I'd no proof of my claims except the ship's papers,
- which, they said, I might have stolen. The thieves! The door-
- keeper to the American Ambassador - for I never saw even the
- Secretary - he swore I spoke French a sight too well for an
- American citizen. Worse than that - I had spent my money, d'ye
- see, and I - I took to fiddling in the streets for my keep; and - and,
- a ship's captain with a fiddle under his arm - well, I don't blame
- 'em that they didn't believe me.
-
- 'I come back to the barge one day - late in this month Brumaire
- it was - fair beazled out. Old Maingon, the caretaker, he'd lit a fire
- in a bucket and was grilling a herring.
-
- '"Courage, mon ami," he says. "Dinner is served."
-
- '"I can't eat," I says. "I can't do any more. It's stronger
- than I am."
- '"Bah!" he says. "Nothing's stronger than a man. Me, for
- example! Less than two years ago I was blown up in the Orient in
- Aboukir Bay, but I descended again and hit the water like a fairy.
- Look at me now," he says. He wasn't much to look at, for he'd
- only one leg and one eye, but the cheerfullest soul that ever trod
- shoe-leather. "That's worse than a hundred and eleven hogshead
- of 'baccy," he goes on. "You're young, too! What wouldn't I give
- to be young in France at this hour! There's nothing you couldn't
- do," he says. "The ball's at your feet - kick it!" he says. He kicks
- the old fire-bucket with his peg-leg. "General Buonaparte, for
- example!" he goes on. "That man's a babe compared to me, and
- see what he's done already. He's conquered Egypt and Austria
- and Italy - oh! half Europe!" he says, "and now he sails back to
- Paris, and he sails out to St Cloud down the river here -don't stare
- at the river, you young fool! - and all in front of these pig-jobbing
- lawyers and citizens he makes himself Consul, which is as good as
- a King. He'll be King, too, in the next three turns of the capstan -
- King of France, England, and the world! Think o' that!" he
- shouts, "and eat your herring."
-
- 'I says something about Boney. If he hadn't been fighting
- England I shouldn't have lost my 'baccy - should I?
-
- '"Young fellow," says Maingon, "you don't understand."
-
- 'We heard cheering. A carriage passed over the bridge with two
- in it.
- '"That's the man himself," says Maingon. "He'll give 'em
- something to cheer for soon." He stands at the salute.
-
- '"Who's t'other in black beside him?" I asks, fairly shaking
- all over.
-
- '"Ah! he's the clever one. You'll hear of him before long. He's
- that scoundrel-bishop, Talleyrand."
-
- '"It is!" I said, and up the steps I went with my fiddle, and run
- after the carriage calling, "Abbe, Abbe!"
-
- 'A soldier knocked the wind out of me with the back of his
- sword, but I had sense to keep on following till the carriage
- stopped - and there just was a crowd round the house-door! I
- must have been half-crazy else I wouldn't have struck up "Si le
- Roi m'avait donne Paris la grande ville!" I thought it might remind him.
-
- '"That is a good omen!" he says to Boney sitting all hunched
- up; and he looks straight at me.
-
- '"Abbe - oh, Abbe!" I says. "Don't you remember Toby and
- Hundred and Eighteen Second Street?"
-
- 'He said not a word. He just crooked his long white finger to
- the guard at the door while the carriage steps were let down, and I
- skipped into the house, and they slammed the door in the crowd's face.
- '"You go there," says a soldier, and shoves me into an empty
- room, where I catched my first breath since I'd left the barge.
- Presently I heard plates rattling next door - there were only
-
- folding doors between - and a cork drawn. "I tell you," some one
- shouts with his mouth full, "it was all that sulky ass Sieyes' fault.
- Only my speech to the Five Hundred saved the situation."
-
- '"Did it save your coat?" says Talleyrand. "I hear they tore it
- when they threw you out. Don't gasconade to me. You may be in
- the road of victory, but you aren't there yet."
-
- 'Then I guessed t'other man was Boney. He stamped about and
- swore at Talleyrand.
-
- '"You forget yourself, Consul," says Talleyrand, "or rather
- you remember yourself- Corsican."
-
- '"Pig!" says Boney, and worse.
-
- '"Emperor!" says Talleyrand, but, the way he spoke, it
- sounded worst of all. Some one must have backed against the
- folding doors, for they flew open and showed me in the middle of
- the room. Boney whipped out his pistol before I could stand up.
-
- "General," says Talleyrand to him, "this gentleman has a habit of
- catching us canaille en deshabille. Put that thing down."
-
- 'Boney laid it on the table, so I guessed which was master.
- Talleyrand takes my hand - "Charmed to see you again,
- Candide," he says. "How is the adorable Dr Pangloss and the
- noble Huron?"
-
- '"They were doing very well when I left," I said. "But I'm
- not."
-
- '"Do you sell buttons now?" he says, and fills me a glass of
- wine off the table.
-
- '"Madeira," says he. "Not so good as some I have drunk."
-
- '"You mountebank!" Boney roars. "Turn that out." (He
- didn't even say "man," but Talleyrand, being gentle born, just
- went on.)
-
- '"Pheasant is not so good as pork," he says. "You will find
- some at that table if you will do me the honour to sit down. Pass
- him a clean plate, General." And, as true as I'm here, Boney slid a
- plate along just like a sulky child. He was a lanky-haired, yellow-
- skinned little man, as nervous as a cat - and as dangerous. I could
- feel that.
-
- '"And now," said Talleyrand, crossing his game leg over his
- sound one, "will you tell me your story?"
- 'I was in a fluster, but I told him nearly everything from the
- time he left me the five hundred dollars in Philadelphia, up to my
- losing ship and cargo at Le Havre. Boney began by listening, but
- after a bit he dropped into his own thoughts and looked at the
- crowd sideways through the front-room curtains. Talleyrand
- called to him when I'd done.
-
- '"Eh? What we need now," says Boney, "is peace for the next
- three or four years."
-
- '"Quite so," says Talleyrand. "Meantime I want the Consul's
- order to the Prize Court at Le Havre to restore my friend here his
- ship."
-
- '"Nonsense!" says Boney. "Give away an oak-built brig of
- two hundred and seven tons for sentiment? Certainly not! She
- must be armed into my Navy with ten - no, fourteen twelve-
- pounders and two long fours. Is she strong enough to bear a long
- twelve forward?"
-
- 'Now I could ha' sworn he'd paid no heed to my talk, but that
- wonderful head-piece of his seemingly skimmed off every word
- of it that was useful to him.
-
- '"Ah, General!" says Talleyrand. "You are a magician - a
- magician without morals. But the brig is undoubtedly American,
- and we don't want to offend them more than we have. "
-
- '"Need anybody talk about the affair?" he says. He didn't look
- at me, but I knew what was in his mind -just cold murder because
- I worried him; and he'd order it as easy as ordering his carriage.
-
- '"You can't stop 'em," I said. "There's twenty-two other men
- besides me." I felt a little more 'ud set me screaming like a wired hare.
-
- '"Undoubtedly American," Talleyrand goes on. "You would
- gain something if you returned the ship - with a message of
- fraternal good-will - published in the MONITEUR" (that's a French
- paper like the Philadelphia AURORA).
-
- '"A good idea!" Boney answers. "One could say much in a
- message."
-
- '"It might be useful," says Talleyrand. "Shall I have the
- message prepared?" He wrote something in a little pocket ledger.
-
- '"Yes - for me to embellish this evening. The MONITEUR will
- publish it tonight."
-
- '"Certainly. Sign, please," says Talleyrand, tearing the leaf out.
-
- '"But that's the order to return the brig," says Boney. "Is that
- necessary? Why should I lose a good ship? Haven't I lost enough
- ships already?"
- 'Talleyrand didn't answer any of those questions. Then Boney
- sidled up to the table and jabs his pen into the ink. Then he shies at
- the paper again: "My signature alone is useless," he says. "You
- must have the other two Consuls as well. Sieyes and Roger Ducos
- must sign. We must preserve the Laws."
-
- '"By the time my friend presents it," says Talleyrand, still
- looking out of window, "only one signature will be necessary."
-
- 'Boney smiles. "It's a swindle," says he, but he signed and
- pushed the paper across.
-
- '"Give that to the President of the Prize Court at Le Havre,"
- says Talleyrand, "and he will give you back your ship. I will settle
- for the cargo myself. You have told me how much it cost. What
- profit did you expect to make on it?"
-
- 'Well, then, as man to man, I was bound to warn him that I'd
- set out to run it into England without troubling the Revenue, and
- so I couldn't rightly set bounds to my profits.'
-
- 'I guessed that all along,' said Puck.
-
- 'There was never a Lee to Warminghurst -
- That wasn't a smuggler last and first.'
-
- The children laughed.
-
- 'It's comical enough now,' said Pharaoh. 'But I didn't laugh
- then. Says Talleyrand after a minute, "I am a bad accountant and I
- have several calculations on hand at present. Shall we say twice
- the cost of the cargo?"
-
- 'Say? I couldn't say a word. I sat choking and nodding like a
- China image while he wrote an order to his secretary to pay me, I
- won't say how much, because you wouldn't believe it.
-
- '"Oh! Bless you, Abbe! God bless you!" I got it out at last.
-
- '"Yes," he says, "I am a priest in spite of myself, but they call
- me Bishop now. Take this for my episcopal blessing," and he
- hands me the paper.
-
- '"He stole all that money from me," says Boney over my
- shoulder. "A Bank of France is another of the things we must
- make. Are you mad?" he shouts at Talleyrand.
-
- '"Quite," says Talleyrand, getting up. "But be calm. The
- disease will never attack you. It is called gratitude. This gentleman
- found me in the street and fed me when I was hungry."
-
- '"I see; and he has made a fine scene of it, and you have paid
- him, I suppose. Meantime, France waits. "
-
- '"Oh! poor France!" says Talleyrand. "Good-bye, Candide,"
- he says to me. "By the way," he says, "have you yet got Red
- Jacket's permission to tell me what the President said to his
- Cabinet after Monsieur Genet rode away?"
-
- 'I couldn't speak, I could only shake my head, and Boney - so
- impatient he was to go on with his doings - he ran at me and fair
- pushed me out of the room. And that was all there was to it.'
- Pharaoh stood up and slid his fiddle into one of his big skirt-
- pockets as though it were a dead hare.
-
- 'Oh! but we want to know lots and lots more,'said Dan. 'How
- you got home - and what old Maingon said on the barge - and
- wasn't your cousin surprised when he had to give back the BERTHE
- AURETTE, and -'
-
- 'Tell us more about Toby!' cried Una.
-
- 'Yes, and Red Jacket,' said Dan.
-
- 'Won't you tell us any more?' they both pleaded.
-
- Puck kicked the oak branch on the fire, till it sent up a column
- of smoke that made them sneeze. When they had finished the
- Shaw was empty except for old Hobden stamping through the
- larches.
-
-
- 'They gipsies have took two,'he said. "My black pullet and my
- liddle gingy-speckled cockrel.'
-
- 'I thought so,' said Dan, picking up one tail-feather that the old
- woman had overlooked.
-
- 'Which way did they go? Which way did the runagates go?'
- said Hobden.
-
- 'Hobby!' said Una. 'Would you like it if we told Keeper Ridley
- all your goings and comings?'
-
-
-
- 'Poor Honest Men'
-
-
- Your jar of Virginny
- Will cost you a guinea,
- Which you reckon too much by five shilling or ten;
- But light your churchwarden
- And judge it accordin'
- When I've told you the troubles of poor honest men.
-
- From the Capes of the Delaware,
- As you are well aware,
- We sail with tobacco for England - but then
- Our own British cruisers,
- They watch us come through, sirs,
- And they press half a score of us poor honest men.
-
- Or if by quick sailing
- (Thick weather prevailing)
- We leave them behind (as we do now and then)
- We are sure of a gun from
- Each frigate we run from,
- Which is often destruction to poor honest men!
-
- Broadsides the Atlantic
- We tumble short-handed,
- With shot-holes to plug and new canvas to bend,
- And off the Azores,
- Dutch, Dons and Monsieurs
- Are waiting to terrify poor honest men!
-
- Napoleon's embargo
- Is laid on all cargo
- Which comfort or aid to King George may intend;
- And since roll, twist and leaf,
- Of all comforts is chief,
- They try for to steal it from poor honest men!
-
- With no heart for fight,
- We take refuge in flight,
- But fire as we run, our retreat to defend,
- Until our stern-chasers
- Cut up her fore-braces,
- And she flies off the wind from us poor honest men!
-
- Twix' the Forties and Fifties,
- South-eastward the drift is,
- And so, when we think we are making Land's End,
- Alas, it is Ushant
- With half the King's Navy,
- Blockading French ports against poor honest men!
-
- But they may not quit station
- (Which is our salvation),
- So swiftly we stand to the Nor'ard again;
- And finding the tail of
- A homeward-bound convoy,
- We slip past the Scillies like poor honest men.
-
- 'Twix' the Lizard and Dover,
- We hand our stuff over,
- Though I may not inform how we do it, nor when;
- But a light on each quarter
- Low down on the water
- Is well understanded by poor honest men.
- Even then we have dangers
- From meddlesome strangers,
- Who spy on our business and are not content
- To take a smooth answer,
- Except with a handspike ...
- And they say they are murdered by poor honest men!
-
- To be drowned or be shot
- Is our natural lot,
- Why should we, moreover, be hanged in the end -
- After all our great pains
- For to dangle in chains,
- As though we were smugglers, not poor honest men?
-
-
-
-
- THE CONVERSION OF ST WILFRID
-
-
-
- Eddi's Service
-
-
- Eddi, priest of St Wilfrid
- In the chapel at Manhood End,
- Ordered a midnight service
- For such as cared to attend.
- But the Saxons were keeping Christmas,
- And the night was stormy as well.
- Nobody came to service
- Though Eddi rang the bell.
-
- 'Wicked weather for walking,'
- Said Eddi of Manhood End.
- 'But I must go on with the service
- For such as care to attend.'
- The altar candles were lighted, -
- An old marsh donkey came,
- Bold as a guest invited,
- And stared at the guttering flame.
-
- The storm beat on at the windows,
- The water splashed on the floor,
- And a wet yoke-weary bullock
- Pushed in through the open door.
- 'How do I know what is greatest,
- How do I know what is least?
- That is My Father's business,'
- Said Eddi, Wilfrid's priest.
-
- 'But, three are gathered together -
- Listen to me and attend.
- I bring good news, my brethren!'
- Said Eddi, of Manhood End.
- And he told the Ox of a manger
- And a stall in Bethlehem,
- And he spoke to the Ass of a Rider
- That rode to jerusalem.
-
- They steamed and dripped in the chancel,
- They listened and never stirred,
- While, just as though they were Bishops,
- Eddi preached them The Word.
-
- Till the gale blew off on the marshes
- And the windows showed the day,
- And the Ox and the Ass together
- Wheeled and clattered away.
-
- And when the Saxons mocked him,
- Said Eddi of Manhood End,
- 'I dare not shut His chapel
- On such as care to attend.'
-
-
-
- The Conversion of St Wilfrid
-
-
- They had bought peppermints up at the village, and were coming
- home past little St Barnabas' Church, when they saw Jimmy
- Kidbrooke, the carpenter's baby, kicking at the churchyard gate,
- with a shaving in his mouth and the tears running down his cheeks.
-
- Una pulled out the shaving and put in a peppermint. Jimmy
- said he was looking for his grand-daddy - he never seemed to take
- much notice of his father - so they went up between the old
- graves, under the leaf-dropping limes, to the porch, where Jim
- trotted in, looked about the empty Church, and screamed like a
- gate-hinge.
-
- Young Sam Kidbrooke's voice came from the bell-tower and
- made them jump.
-
- 'Why, jimmy,'he called, 'what are you doin' here? Fetch
- him, Father!'
-
- Old Mr Kidbrooke stumped downstairs, jerked Jimmy on to
- his shoulder, stared at the children beneath his brass spectacles,
- and stumped back again. They laughed: it was so exactly like
- Mr Kidbrooke.
-
- 'It's all right,' Una called up the stairs. 'We found him, Sam.
- Does his mother know?'
-
- 'He's come off by himself. She'll be justabout crazy,'
- Sam answered.
-
- 'Then I'll run down street and tell her.' Una darted off.
-
- 'Thank you, Miss Una. Would you like to see how we're
- mendin' the bell-beams, Mus' Dan?'
-
- Dan hopped up, and saw young Sam lying on his stomach in a
- most delightful place among beams and ropes, close to the five
- great bells. Old Mr Kidbrooke on the floor beneath was planing a
- piece of wood, and Jimmy was eating the shavings as fast as they
- came away. He never looked at Jimmy; Jimmy never stopped
- eating; and the broad gilt-bobbed pendulum of the church clock
- never stopped swinging across the white-washed wall of the
- tower.
-
- Dan winked through the sawdust that fell on his upturned face.
- 'Ring a bell,' he called.
-
- , I mustn't do that, but I'll buzz one of 'em a bit for you,' said
- Sam. He pounded on the sound-bow of the biggest bell, and
- waked a hollow groaning boom that ran up and down the tower
- like creepy feelings down your back. just when it almost began to
- hurt, it died away in a hurry of beautiful sorrowful cries, like a
- wine-glass rubbed with a wet finger. The pendulum clanked -
- one loud clank to each silent swing.
-
- Dan heard Una return from Mrs Kidbrooke's, and ran down to
- fetch her. She was standing by the font staring at some one who
- kneeled at the Altar-rail.
-
- 'Is that the Lady who practises the organ?' she whispered.
-
- 'No. She's gone into the organ-place. Besides, she wears
- black,' Dan replied.
-
- The figure rose and came down the nave. It was a white-haired
- man in a long white gown with a sort of scarf looped low on the
- neck, one end hanging over his shoulder. His loose long sleeves
- were embroidered with gold, and a deep strip of gold embroidery
- waved and sparkled round the hem of his gown.
-
- 'Go and meet him,' said Puck's voice behind the font. 'It's
- only Wilfrid.'
-
- 'Wilfrid who?' said Dan. 'You come along too.'
-
- 'Wilfrid - Saint of Sussex, and Archbishop of York. I shall wait
- till he asks me.' He waved them forward. Their feet squeaked on
- the old grave-slabs in the centre aisle. The Archbishop raised one
- hand with a pink ring on it, and said something in Latin. He was
- very handsome, and his thin face looked almost as silvery as his
- thin circle of hair.
-
- 'Are you alone?' he asked.
-
- 'Puck's here, of course,' said Una. 'Do you know him?'
-
- 'I know him better now than I used to.' He beckoned over
- Dan's shoulder, and spoke again in Latin. Puck pattered forward,
- holding himself as straight as an arrow. The Archbishop smiled.
-
- 'Be welcome,' said he. 'Be very welcome.'
-
- 'Welcome to you also, O Prince of the church,' Puck replied.
-
- The Archbishop bowed his head and passed on, till he glimmered
- like a white moth in the shadow by the font.
-
- 'He does look awfully princely,' said Una. 'Isn't he coming
- back?'
-
- 'Oh yes. He's only looking over the church. He's very fond of
- churches,' said Puck. 'What's that?'
-
- The Lady who practices the organ was speaking to the blower-
- boy behind the organ-screen. 'We can't very well talk here,' Puck
- whispered. 'Let's go to Panama Corner.'
-
- He led them to the end of the south aisle, where there is a slab of
- iron which says in queer, long-tailed letters: ORATE P. ANNEMA JHONE COLINE.
- The children always called it Panama Corner.
-
- The Archbishop moved slowly about the little church, peering
- at the old memorial tablets and the new glass windows. The Lady
- who practises the organ began to pull out stops and rustle hymn-
- books behind the screen.
-
- 'I hope she'll do all the soft lacey tunes - like treacle on
- porridge,' said Una.
-
- 'I like the trumpety ones best,' said Dan. 'Oh, look at Wilfrid!
- He's trying to shut the Altar-gates!'
-
- 'Tell him he mustn't,' said Puck, quite seriously.
-
- He can't, anyhow,' Dan muttered, and tiptoed out of Panama
- Corner while the Archbishop patted and patted at the carved gates
- that always sprang open again beneath his hand.
-
- 'That's no use, sir,' Dan whispered. 'Old Mr Kidbrooke says
- Altar-gates are just the one pair of gates which no man can shut.
- He made 'em so himself.'
-
- The Archbishop's blue eyes twinkled. Dan saw that he knew all
- about it.
-
- 'I beg your pardon,' Dan stammered - very angry with Puck.
-
- 'Yes, I know! He made them so Himself.' The Archbishop
- smiled, and crossed to Panama Corner, where Una dragged up a
- certain padded arm-chair for him to sit on.
-
- The organ played softly. 'What does that music say?'he asked.
-
- Una dropped into the chant without thinking: '"O all ye
- works of the Lord, bless ye the Lord; praise him and magnify him
- for ever." We call it the Noah's Ark, because it's all lists of things
- - beasts and birds and whales, you know.'
-
- 'Whales?' said the Archbishop quickly.
-
- 'Yes - "O ye whales, and all that move in the waters,"' Una
- hummed - '"Bless ye the Lord." It sounds like a wave turning
- over, doesn't it?'
-
- 'Holy Father,' said Puck with a demure face, 'is a little seal also
- "one who moves in the water"?'
-
- 'Eh? Oh yes - yess!' he laughed. 'A seal moves wonderfully in
- the waters. Do the seal come to my island still?'
-
- Puck shook his head. 'All those little islands have been
- swept away.'
-
- 'Very possible. The tides ran fiercely down there. Do you
- know the land of the Sea-calf, maiden?'
-
- 'No - but we've seen seals - at Brighton.'
-
- 'The Archbishop is thinking of a little farther down the coast.
- He means Seal's Eye - Selsey - down Chichester way - where he
- converted the South Saxons,' Puck explained.
-
- 'Yes - yess; if the South Saxons did not convert me,' said the
- Archbishop, smiling. 'The first time I was wrecked was on that
- coast. As our ship took ground and we tried to push her off, an old
- fat fellow of a seal, I remember, reared breast-high out of the
- water, and scratched his head with his flipper as if he were saying:
- "What does that excited person with the pole think he is doing'"I
- was very wet and miserable, but I could not help laughing, till the
- natives came down and attacked us.'
-
- 'What did you do?' Dan asked.
-
- 'One couldn't very well go back to France, so one tried to make
- them go back to the shore. All the South Saxons are born
- wreckers, like my own Northumbrian folk. I was bringing over a
- few things for my old church at York, and some of the natives laid
- hands on them, and - and I'm afraid I lost my temper.'
-
- 'it is said -' Puck's voice was wickedly meek -'that there was a
- great fight.'
-
- Eh, but I must ha' been a silly lad.' Wilfrid spoke with a sudden
- thick burr in his voice. He coughed, and took up his silvery tones
- again. 'There was no fight really. My men thumped a few of
- them, but the tide rose half an hour before its time, with a strong
- wind, and we backed off. What I wanted to say, though, was, that
- the seas about us were full of sleek seals watching the scuffle. My
- good Eddi - my chaplain - insisted that they were demons. Yes -
- yess! That was my first acquaintance with the South Saxons and
- their seals.'
-
- 'But not the only time you were wrecked, was it?' said Dan.
-
- 'Alas, no! On sea and land my life seems to have been one long
- shipwreck.' He looked at the Jhone Coline slab as old Hobden
- sometimes looks into the fire. 'Ah, well!'
-
- 'But did you ever have any more adventures among the seals?"
- said Una, after a little.
-
- 'Oh, the seals! I beg your pardon. They are the important
- things. Yes - yess! I went back to the South Saxons after twelve -
- fifteen - years. No, I did not come by water, but overland from
- my own Northumbria, to see what I could do. It's little one can do
- with that class of native except make them stop killing each other
- and themselves -'
- 'Why did they kill themselves?' Una asked, her chin in her hand.
-
- 'Because they were heathen. When they grew tired of life (as if
- they were the only people!) they would jump into the sea . They
- called it going to Wotan. It wasn't want of food always - by any
- means. A man would tell you that he felt grey in the heart, or a
- woman would say that she saw nothing but long days in front of
- her; and they'd saunter away to the mud-flats and - that would be
- the end of them, poor souls, unless one headed them off. One had
- to run quick, but one can't allow people to lay hands on themselves
- because they happen to feel grey. Yes - yess - Extraordinary
- people, the South Saxons. Disheartening, sometimes. ... What does
- that say now?' The organ had changed tune again.
-
- 'Only a hymn for next Sunday,' said Una. '"The Church's
- One Foundation." Go on, please, about running over the mud. I
- should like to have seen you.'
-
- 'I dare say you would, and I really could run in those days.
- Ethelwalch the King gave me some five or six muddy parishes by
- the sea, and the first time my good Eddi and I rode there we saw a
- man slouching along the slob, among the seals at Manhood End.
- My good Eddi disliked seals - but he swallowed his objections
- and ran like a hare.'
-
- 'Why?'said Dan.
-
- 'For the same reason that I did. We thought it was one of our
- people going to drown himself. As a matter of fact, Eddi and I
- were nearly drowned in the pools before we overtook him. To
- cut a long story short, we found ourselves very muddy, very
- breathless, being quietly made fun of in good Latin by a very
- well-spoken person. No - he'd no idea of going to Wotan. He was
- fishing on his own beaches, and he showed us the beacons and
- turf-heaps that divided his land from the church property. He
- took us to his own house, gave us a good dinner, some more than
- good wine, sent a guide with us into Chichester, and became one
- of my best and most refreshing friends. He was a Meon by
- descent, from the west edge of the kingdom; a scholar educated,
- curiously enough, at Lyons, my old school; had travelled the
- world over, even to Rome, and was a brilliant talker. We found
- we had scores of acquaintances in common. It seemed he was a
- small chief under King Ethelwalch, and I fancy the King was
- somewhat afraid of him. The South Saxons mistrust a man who
- talks too well. Ah! Now, I've left out the very point of my story.
- He kept a great grey-muzzled old dog-seal that he had brought up
- from a pup. He called it Padda - after one of my clergy. It was
- rather like fat, honest old Padda. The creature followed him
- everywhere, and nearly knocked down my good Eddi when we
- first met him. Eddi loathed it. It used to sniff at his thin legs and
- cough at him. I can't say I ever took much notice of it (I was not
- fond of animals), till one day Eddi came to me with a circumstantial
- account of some witchcraft that Meon worked. He would
- tell the seal to go down to the beach the last thing at night, and
- bring him word of the weather. When it came back, Meon might
- say to his slaves, "Padda thinks we shall have wind tomorrow.
- Haul up the boats!" I spoke to Meon casually about the story, and
- he laughed.
-
- 'He told me he could judge by the look of the creature's coat
- and the way it sniffed what weather was brewing. Quite possible.
- One need not put down everything one does not understand to
- the work of bad spirits - or good ones, for that matter.' He
- nodded towards Puck, who nodded gaily in return.
-
- 'I say so,' he went on, 'because to a certain extent I have been
- made a victim of that habit of mind. Some while after I was settled
- at Selsey, King Ethelwalch and Queen Ebba ordered their people
- to be baptized. I fear I'm too old to believe that a whole nation can
- change its heart at the King's command, and I had a shrewd
- suspicion that their real motive was to get a good harvest. No rain
- had fallen for two or three years, but as soon as we had finished
- baptizing, it fell heavily, and they all said it was a miracle.'
-
- 'And was it?' Dan asked.
-
- 'Everything in life is a miracle, but' - the Archbishop twisted
- the heavy ring on his finger - 'I should be slow - ve-ry slow
- should I be - to assume that a certain sort of miracle happens
- whenever lazy and improvident people say they are going to turn
- over a new leaf if they are paid for it. My friend Meon had sent his
- slaves to the font, but he had not come himself, so the next time I
- rode over - to return a manuscript - I took the liberty of asking
- why. He was perfectly open about it. He looked on the King's
- action as a heathen attempt to curry favour with the Christians'
- God through me the Archbishop, and he would have none of it.
-
- '"My dear man," I said, "admitting that that is the case, surely
- you, as an educated person, don't believe in Wotan and all the
- other hobgoblins any more than Padda here?" The old seal was
- hunched up on his ox-hide behind his master's chair.
-
- '"Even if I don't," he said, "why should I insult the memory of
- my fathers' Gods? I have sent you a hundred and three of my
- rascals to christen. Isn't that enough?"
-
- '"By no means," I answered. "I want you."
-
- '"He wants us! What do you think of that, Padda?" He pulled
- the seal's whiskers till it threw back its head and roared, and he
- pretended to interpret. "No! Padda says he won't be baptized yet
- awhile. He says you'll stay to dinner and come fishing with me
- tomorrow, because you're over-worked and need a rest."
-
- '"I wish you'd keep yon brute in its proper place," I said, and
- Eddi, my chaplain, agreed.
-
- '"I do," said Meon. "I keep him just next my heart. He can't
- tell a lie, and he doesn't know how to love any one except me. It
- 'ud be the same if I were dying on a mud-bank, wouldn't it,
- Padda?"
-
- '"Augh! Augh!" said Padda, and put up his head to be scratched.
-
- 'Then Meon began to tease Eddi: "Padda says, if Eddi saw his
- Archbishop dying on a mud-bank Eddi would tuck up his gown
- and run. Padda knows Eddi can run too! Padda came into Wittering
- Church last Sunday - all wet - to hear the music, and Eddi ran out."
-
- 'My good Eddi rubbed his hands and his shins together, and
- flushed. "Padda is a child of the Devil, who is the father of lies!"
- he cried, and begged my pardon for having spoken. I forgave him.
-
- '"Yes. You are just about stupid enough for a musician," said
- Meon. "But here he is. Sing a hymn to him, and see if he can stand
- it. You'll find my small harp beside the fireplace."
-
- 'Eddi, who is really an excellent musician, played and sang for
- quite half an hour. Padda shuffled off his ox-hide, hunched
- himself on his flippers before him, and listened with his head
- thrown back. Yes - yess! A rather funny sight! Meon tried not to
- laugh, and asked Eddi if he were satisfied.
-
- 'It takes some time to get an idea out of my good Eddi's head.
- He looked at me.
-
- '"Do you want to sprinkle him with holy water, and see if he
- flies up the chimney? Why not baptize him?" said Meon.
-
- 'Eddi was really shocked. I thought it was bad taste myself.
-
- '"That's not fair," said Meon. "You call him a demon and a
- familiar spirit because he loves his master and likes music, and
- when I offer you a chance to prove it you won't take it. Look here!
- I'll make a bargain. I'll be baptized if you'll baptize Padda too.
- He's more of a man than most of my slaves."
-
- '"One doesn't bargain - or joke - about these matters," I said.
- He was going altogether too far.
-
- '"Quite right," said Meon; "I shouldn't like any one to joke
- about Padda. Padda, go down to the beach and bring us
- tomorrow's weather!"
-
- 'My good Eddi must have been a little over-tired with his day's
- work. "I am a servant of the church," he cried. "My business is to
- save souls, not to enter into fellowships and understandings with
- accursed beasts."
-
- '"Have it your own narrow way," said Meon. "Padda, you
- needn't go." The old fellow flounced back to his ox-hide at once.
-
- '"Man could learn obedience at least from that creature," said
- Eddi, a little ashamed of himself. Christians should not curse.
- '"Don't begin to apologise Just when I am beginning to like
- you," said Meon. "We'll leave Padda behind tomorrow - out of
- respect to your feelings. Now let's go to supper. We must be up
- early tomorrow for the whiting."
-
- 'The next was a beautiful crisp autumn morning - a weather-
- breeder, if I had taken the trouble to think; but it's refreshing to
- escape from kings and converts for half a day. We three went by
- ourselves in Meon's smallest boat, and we got on the whiting near
- an old wreck, a mile or so off shore. Meon knew the marks to a
- yard, and the fish were keen. Yes - yess! A perfect morning's
- fishing! If a Bishop can't be a fisherman, who can?' He twiddled
- his ring again. 'We stayed there a little too long, and while we
- were getting up our stone, down came the fog. After some
- discussion, we decided to row for the land. The ebb was just
- beginning to make round the point, and sent us all ways at once
- like a coracle.'
-
- 'Selsey Bill,' said Puck under his breath. 'The tides run
- something furious there.'
-
- 'I believe you,' said the Archbishop. 'Meon and I have spent a
- good many evenings arguing as to where exactly we drifted. All I
- know is we found ourselves in a little rocky cove that had sprung
- up round us out of the fog, and a swell lifted the boat on to a ledge,
- and she broke up beneath our feet. We had just time to shuffle
- through the weed before the next wave. The sea was rising.
- '"It's rather a pity we didn't let Padda go down to the beach
- last night," said Meon. "He might have warned us this was coming."
-
- '"Better fall into the hands of God than the hands of demons,"
- said Eddi, and his teeth chattered as he prayed. A nor'-west breeze
- had just got up - distinctly cool.
-
- '"Save what you can of the boat," said Meon; "we may need
- it," and we had to drench ourselves again, fishing out stray
- planks.'
-
- 'What for?' said Dan.
-
- 'For firewood. We did not know when we should get off. Eddi
- had flint and steel, and we found dry fuel in the old gulls' nests and
- lit a fire. It smoked abominably, and we guarded it with boat-
- planks up-ended between the rocks. One gets used to that sort of
- thing if one travels. Unluckily I'm not so strong as I was. I fear I
- must have been a trouble to my friends. It was blowing a full gale
- before midnight. Eddi wrung out his cloak, and tried to wrap me
- in it, but I ordered him on his obedience to keep it. However, he
- held me in his arms all the first night, and Meon begged his
- pardon for what he'd said the night before - about Eddi, running
- away if he found me on a sandbank, you remember.
- '"You are right in half your prophecy," said Eddi. "I have
- tucked up my gown, at any rate." (The wind had blown it over
- his head.) "Now let us thank God for His mercies."
-
- '"Hum!" said Meon. "If this gale lasts, we stand a very fair
- chance of dying of starvation."
-
- '"If it be God's will that we survive, God will provide," said Eddi.
- "At least help me to sing to Him." The wind almost whipped the
- words out of his mouth, but he braced himself against a rock and
- sang psalms.
-
- 'I'm glad I never concealed my opinion - from myself - that
- Eddi was a better man than I. Yet I have worked hard in my time -
- very hard! Yes - yess! So the morning and the evening were our
- second day on that islet. There was rain-water in the rock-pools,
- and, as a churchman, I knew how to fast, but I admit we were
- hungry. Meon fed our fire chip by chip to eke it out, and they
- made me sit over it, the dear fellows, when I was too weak to
- object. Meon held me in his arms the second night, just like a
- child. My good Eddi was a little out of his senses, and imagined
- himself teaching a York choir to sing. Even so, he was beautifully
- patient with them.
-
- 'I heard Meon whisper, "If this keeps up we shall go to our
- Gods. I wonder what Wotan will say to me. He must know I
- don't believe in him. On the other hand, I can't do what Ethelwalch
- finds so easy - curry favour with your God at the last
- minute, in the hope of being saved - as you call it. How do you
- advise, Bishop?"
- '"My dear man," I said, "if that is your honest belief, I take it
- upon myself to say you had far better not curry favour with any
- God. But if it's only your Jutish pride that holds you back, lift me
- up, and I'll baptize you even now."
-
- '"Lie still," said Meon. "I could judge better if I were in my
- own hall. But to desert one's fathers' Gods - even if one doesn't
- believe in them - in the middle of a gale, isn't quite - What would
- you do yourself?"
-
- 'I was lying in his arms, kept alive by the warmth of his big,
- steady heart. It did not seem to me the time or the place for subtle
- arguments, so I answered, "No, I certainly should not desert my
- God." I don't see even now what else I could have said.
-
- '"Thank you. I'll remember that, if I live," said Meon, and I
- must have drifted back to my dreams about Northumbria and
- beautiful France, for it was broad daylight when I heard him
- calling on Wotan in that high, shaking heathen yell that I detest so.
-
- '"Lie quiet. I'm giving Wotan his chance," he said. Our dear
- Eddi ambled up, still beating time to his imaginary choir.
-
- '"Yes. Call on your Gods," he cried, "and see what gifts they
- will send you. They are gone on a journey, or they are hunting."
-
- 'I assure you the words were not out of his mouth when old
- Padda shot from the top of a cold wrinkled swell, drove himself
- over the weedy ledge, and landed fair in our laps with a rock-cod
- between his teeth. I could not help smiling at Eddi's face. "A
- miracle! A miracle!" he cried, and kneeled down to clean the cod.
-
- '"You've been a long time finding us, my son," said Meon.
- "Now fish - fish for all our lives. We're starving, Padda."
-
- 'The old fellow flung himself quivering like a salmon backward
- into the boil of the currents round the rocks, and Meon said,
- "We're safe. I'll send him to fetch help when this wind drops. Eat
- and be thankful."
-
- 'I never tasted anything so good as those rock-codlings we took
- from Padda's mouth and half roasted over the fire. Between his
- plunges Padda would hunch up and purr over Meon with the
- tears running down his face. I never knew before that seals could
- weep for joy - as I have wept.
-
- '"Surely," said Eddi, with his mouth full, "God has made the
- seal the loveliest of His creatures in the water. Look how Padda
- breasts the current! He stands up against it like a rock; now watch
- the chain of bubbles where he dives; and now - there is his wise
- head under that rock-ledge! Oh, a blessing be on thee, my little
- brother Padda!"
-
- '"You said he was a child of the Devil!" Meon laughed.
- '"There I sinned," poor Eddi answered. "Call him here, and I
- will ask his pardon. God sent him out of the storm to humble me,
- a fool."
-
- '"I won't ask you to enter into fellowships and understandings
- with any accursed brute," said Meon, rather unkindly. "Shall we
- say he was sent to our Bishop as the ravens were sent to your
- prophet Elijah?"
-
- '"Doubtless that is so," said Eddi. "I will write it so if I live to
- get home."
-
- '"No - no!" I said. "Let us three poor men kneel and thank
- God for His mercies."
-
- 'We kneeled, and old Padda shuffled up and thrust his head
- under Meon's elbows. I laid my hand upon it and blessed him. So
- did Eddi.
-
- '"And now, my son," I said to Meon, "shall I baptize thee?"
-
- '"Not yet," said he. "Wait till we are well ashore and at home.
- No God in any Heaven shall say that I came to him or left him
- because I was wet and cold. I will send Padda to my people for a
- boat. Is that witchcraft, Eddi?"
-
- '"Why, no. Surely Padda will go and pull them to the beach by
- the skirts of their gowns as he pulled me in Wittering Church to
- ask me to sing. Only then I was afraid, and did not understand,"
- said Eddi.
-
- '"You are understanding now," said Meon, and at a wave of
- his arm off went Padda to the mainland, making a wake like a
- war-boat till we lost him in the rain. Meon's people could not
- bring a boat across for some hours; even so it was ticklish work
- among the rocks in that tideway. But they hoisted me aboard, too
- stiff to move, and Padda swam behind us, barking and turning
- somersaults all the way to Manhood End!'
-
- 'Good old Padda!' murmured Dan.
-
- 'When we were quite rested and re-clothed, and his people had
- been summoned - not an hour before - Meon offered himself to
- be baptized.'
-
- 'Was Padda baptized too?' Una asked.
-
- 'No, that was only Meon's joke. But he sat blinking on his
- ox-hide in the middle of the hall. When Eddi (who thought I
- wasn't looking) made a little cross in holy water on his wet
- muzzle, he kissed Eddi's hand. A week before Eddi wouldn't
- have touched him. That was a miracle, if you like! But seriously, I
- was more glad than I can tell you to get Meon. A rare and splendid
- soul that never looked back - never looked back!' The Arch-
- bishop half closed his eyes.
-
- 'But, sir,' said Puck, most respectfully, 'haven't you left out
- what Meon said afterwards?' Before the Bishop could speak he
- turned to the children and went on: 'Meon called all his fishers and
- ploughmen and herdsmen into the hall and he said: "Listen, men!
- Two days ago I asked our Bishop whether it was fair for a man to
- desert his fathers' Gods in a time of danger. Our Bishop said it
- was not fair. You needn't shout like that, because you are all
- Christians now. My red war-boat's crew will remember how
- near we all were to death when Padda fetched them over to the
- Bishop's islet. You can tell your mates that even in that place, at
- that time, hanging on the wet, weedy edge of death, our Bishop, a
- Christian, counselled me, a heathen, to stand by my fathers'
- Gods. I tell you now that a faith which takes care that every man
- shall keep faith, even though he may save his soul by breaking
- faith, is the faith for a man to believe in. So I believe in the
- Christian God, and in Wilfrid His Bishop, and in the Church that
- Wilfrid rules. You have been baptized once by the King's orders. I
- shall not have you baptized again; but if I find any more old
- women being sent to Wotan, or any girls dancing on the sly
- before Balder, or any men talking about Thun or Lok or the rest, I
- will teach you with my own hands how to keep faith with the
- Christian God. Go out quietly; you'll find a couple of beefs on the
- beach." Then of course they shouted "Hurrah!" which meant
- "Thor help us!" and - I think you laughed, sir?'
-
- 'I think you remember it all too well,' said the Archbishop,
- smiling. 'It was a joyful day for me. I had learned a great deal on
- that rock where Padda found us. Yes - yess! One should deal
- kindly with all the creatures of God, and gently with their
- masters. But one learns late.'
-
- He rose, and his gold-embroidered sleeves rustled thickly.
-
- The organ cracked and took deep breaths.
-
- 'Wait a minute,' Dan whispered. 'She's going to do the
- trumpety one. It takes all the wind you can pump. It's in Latin, sir.'
-
- 'There is no other tongue,' the Archbishop answered.
-
- 'It's not a real hymn,' Una explained. 'She does it as a treat after
- her exercises. She isn't a real organist, you know. She just comes
- down here sometimes, from the Albert Hall.'
-
- 'Oh, what a miracle of a voice!' said the Archbishop.
-
- It rang out suddenly from a dark arch of lonely noises - every
- word spoken to the very end:
-
- 'Dies Irae, dies illa,
- Solvet saeclum in favilla,
- Teste David cum Sibylla.'
- The Archbishop caught his breath and moved forward.
- The music carried on by itself a while.
-
- 'Now it's calling all the light out of the windows,' Una whispered
- to Dan.
-
- 'I think it's more like a horse neighing in battle,' he whispered
- back. The voice continued:
-
- 'Tuba mirum spargens sonum
- Per sepulchre regionum.'
-
- Deeper and deeper the organ dived down, but far below its
- deepest note they heard Puck's voice joining in the last line:
-
- 'Coget omnes ante thronum.'
-
- As they looked in wonder, for it sounded like the dull jar of one
- of the very pillars shifting, the little fellow turned and went out
- through the south door.
-
- 'Now's the sorrowful part, but it's very beautiful.' Una found
- herself speaking to the empty chair in front of her.
-
- 'What are you doing that for?' Dan said behind her. 'You spoke
- so politely too.'
-
- 'I don't know ... I thought -' said Una. 'Funny!'
-
- ''Tisn't. It's the part you like best,' Dan grunted.
-
- The music had turned soft - full of little sounds that chased each
- other on wings across the broad gentle flood of the main tune. But
- the voice was ten times lovelier than the music.
-
- 'Recordare Jesu pie,
- Quod sum causa Tuae viae,
- Ne me perdas illi die!'
-
- There was no more. They moved out into the centre aisle.
-
- 'That you?' the Lady called as she shut the lid. 'I thought I
- heard you, and I played it on purpose.'
-
- 'Thank you awfully,' said Dan. 'We hoped you would, so we
- waited. Come on, Una, it's pretty nearly dinner-time.'
-
-
-
- Song of the Red War-Boat
-
-
- Shove off from the wharf-edge! Steady!
- Watch for a smooth! Give way!
- If she feels the lop already
- She'll stand on her head in the bay.
- It's ebb - it's dusk - it's blowing,
- The shoals are a mile of white,
- But (snatch her along!) we're going
- To find our master tonight.
-
- For we hold that in all disaster
- Of shipwreck, storm, or sword,
- A man must stand by his master
- When once he had pledged his word!
-
- Raging seas have we rowed in,
- But we seldom saw them thus;
- Our master is angry with Odin -
- Odin is angry with us!
- Heavy odds have we taken,
- But never before such odds.
- The Gods know they are forsaken,
- We must risk the wrath of the Gods!
-
- Over the crest she flies from,
- Into its hollow she drops,
- Crouches and clears her eyes from
- The wind-torn breaker-tops,
- Ere out on the shrieking shoulder
- Of a hill-high surge she drives.
- Meet her! Meet her and hold her!
- Pull for your scoundrel lives!
-
- The thunder bellow and clamour
- The harm that they mean to do;
- There goes Thor's Own Hammer
- Cracking the dark in two!
-
- Close! But the blow has missed her,
- Here comes the wind of the blow!
- Row or the squall'll twist her
- Broadside on to it! - Row!
-
- Hearken, Thor of the Thunder!
- We are not here for a jest -
- For wager, warfare, or plunder,
- Or to put your power to test.
- This work is none of our wishing -
- We would stay at home if we might -
- But our master is wrecked out fishing,
- We go to find him tonight.
-
- For we hold that in all disaster -
- As the Gods Themselves have said -
- A man must stand by his master
- Till one of the two is dead.
-
- That is our way of thinking,
- Now you can do as you will,
- While we try to save her from sinking,
- And hold her head to it still.
- Bale her and keep her moving,
- Or she'll break her back in the trough ...
- Who said the weather's improving,
- And the swells are taking off?
-
- Sodden, and chafed and aching,
- Gone in the loins and knees -
- No matter - the day is breaking,
- And there's far less weight to the seas!
- Up mast, and finish baling -
- In oars, and out with the mead -
- The rest will be two-reef sailing ...
- That was a night indeed!
- But we hold that in all disaster
- (And faith, we have found it true!)
- If only you stand by your master,
- The Gods will stand by you!
-
-
-
-
-
- A DOCTOR OF MEDICINE
-
-
-
- An Astrologer's Song
-
-
- To the Heavens above us
- Oh, look and behold
- The planets that love us
- All harnessed in gold!
- What chariots, what horses,
- Against us shall bide
- While the Stars in their courses
- Do fight on our side?
-
- All thought, all desires,
- That are under the sun,
- Are one with their fires,
- As we also are one;
- All matter, all spirit,
- All fashion, all frame,
- Receive and inherit
- Their strength from the same.
-
- (Oh, man that deniest
- All power save thine own,
- Their power in the highest
- Is mightily shown.
- Not less in the lowest
- That power is made clear.
- Oh, man, if thou knowest,
- What treasure is here!)
-
- Earth quakes in her throes
- And we wonder for why!
- But the blind planet knows
- When her ruler is nigh;
- And, attuned since Creation,
- To perfect accord,
- She thrills in her station
- And yearns to her Lord.
-
- The waters have risen,
- The springs are unbound -
- The floods break their prison,
- And ravin around.
- No rampart withstands 'em,
- Their fury will last,
- Till the Sign that commands 'em
- Sinks low or swings past.
-
- Through abysses unproven,
- And gulfs beyond thought,
- Our portion is woven,
- Our burden is brought.
- Yet They that prepare it,
- Whose Nature we share,
- Make us who must bear it
- Well able to bear.
-
- Though terrors o'ertake us
- We'll not be afraid,
- No Power can unmake us
- Save that which has made.
- Nor yet beyond reason
- Nor hope shall we fall -
- All things have their season,
- And Mercy crowns all.
-
- Then, doubt not, ye fearful -
- The Eternal is King -
- Up, heart, and be cheerful,
- And lustily sing:
- What chariots, what horses,
- Against us shall bide
- While the Stars in their courses
- Do fight on our side?
-
-
-
- A Doctor of Medicine
-
- They were playing hide-and-seek with bicycle lamps after tea.
- Dan had hung his lamp on the apple tree at the end of the hellebore
- bed in the walled garden, and was crouched by the gooseberry
- bushes ready to dash off when Una should spy him. He saw her
- lamp come into the garden and disappear as she hid it under her
- cloak. While he listened for her footsteps, somebody (they both
- thought it was Phillips the gardener) coughed in the corner of the
- herb-beds.
-
- 'All right,' Una shouted across the asparagus; 'we aren't
- hurting your old beds, Phippsey!'
-
- She flashed her lantern towards the spot, and in its circle of light
- they saw a Guy Fawkes-looking man in a black cloak and a
- steeple-crowned hat, walking down the path beside Puck. They
- ran to meet him, and the man said something to them about rooms
- in their head. After a time they understood he was warning them
- not to catch colds.
-
- 'You've a bit of a cold yourself, haven't you?' said Una, for he
- ended all his sentences with a consequential cough. Puck laughed.
-
- 'Child,' the man answered, 'if it hath pleased Heaven to afflict
- me with an infirmity -'
-
- 'Nay, nay,' Puck struck In, 'the maid spoke out of kindness. I
- know that half your cough is but a catch to trick the vulgar; and
- that's a pity. There's honesty enough in you, Nick, without
- rasping and hawking.'
-
- 'Good people' - the man shrugged his lean shoulders - 'the
- vulgar crowd love not truth unadorned. Wherefore we philosophers
- must needs dress her to catch their eye or - ahem! - their ear.'
-
- 'And what d'you think of that?' said Puck solemnly to Dan.
-
- 'I don't know,' he answered. 'It sounds like lessons.'
-
- 'Ah - well! There have been worse men than Nick Culpeper to
- take lessons from. Now, where can we sit that's not indoors?'
-
- 'In the hay-mow, next to old Middenboro,' Dan suggested.
- 'He doesn't mind.'
-
- 'Eh?' Mr Culpeper was stooping over the pale hellebore
- blooms by the light of Una's lamp. 'Does Master Middenboro
- need my poor services, then?'
-
- 'Save him, no!' said Puck. 'He is but a horse - next door to an
- ass, as you'll see presently. Come!'
-
- Their shadows jumped and slid on the fruit-tree walls. They
- filed out of the garden by the snoring pig-pound and the crooning
- hen-house, to the shed where Middenboro the old lawn-mower
- pony lives. His friendly eyes showed green in the light as they set
- their lamps down on the chickens' drinking-trough outside, and
- pushed past to the hay-mow. Mr Culpeper stooped at the door.
-
- 'Mind where you lie,' said Dan. 'This hay's full of hedge-
- brishings.
-
- 'In! in!' said Puck. 'You've lain in fouler places than this, Nick.
- Ah! Let us keep touch with the stars!' He kicked open the top of
- the half-door, and pointed to the clear sky. 'There be the planets
- you conjure with! What does your wisdom make of that wandering
- and variable star behind those apple boughs?'
-
- The children smiled. A bicycle that they knew well was being
- walked down the steep lane.
- 'Where?' Mr Culpeper leaned forward quickly. 'That? Some
- countryman's lantern.'
-
- 'Wrong, Nick,' said Puck. ''Tis a singular bright star in Virgo,
- declining towards the house of Aquarius the water-carrier, who
- hath lately been afflicted by Gemini. Aren't I right, Una?'
- Mr Culpeper snorted contemptuously.
-
- 'No. It's the village nurse going down to the Mill about some
- fresh twins that came there last week. Nurse,' Una called, as
- the light stopped on the flat, 'when can I see the Morris twins? And
- how are they?'
-
- 'Next Sunday, perhaps. Doing beautifully,' the Nurse called
- back, and with a ping-ping-ping of the bell brushed round the corner.
-
- 'Her uncle's a vetinary surgeon near Banbury,' Una explained,
- and if you ring her bell at night, it rings right beside her bed -not
- downstairs at all. Then she 'umps up - she always keeps a pair of
- dry boots in the fender, you know - and goes anywhere she's
- wanted. We help her bicycle through gaps sometimes. Most of
- her babies do beautifully. She told us so herself.'
-
- 'I doubt not, then, that she reads in my books,' said Mr
- Culpeper quietly. 'Twins at the Mill!' he muttered half aloud.
- "And again He sayeth, Return, ye children of men." '
-
- 'Are you a doctor or a rector?' Una asked, and Puck with a
- shout turned head over heels in the hay. But Mr Culpeper was
- quite serious. He told them that he was a physician-astrologer -a
- doctor who knew all about the stars as well as all about herbs for
- medicine. He said that the sun, the moon, and five Planets, called
- Jupiter, Mars, Mercury, Saturn, and Venus, governed everybody
- and everything in the world. They all lived in Houses - he
- mapped out some of them against the dark with a busy forefinger -
- and they moved from House to House like pieces at draughts;
- and they went loving and hating each other all over the skies. If
- you knew their likes and dislikes, he said, you could make them
- cure your patient and hurt your enemy, and find out the secret
- causes of things. He talked of these five Planets as though they
- belonged to him, or as though he were playing long games
- against them. The children burrowed in the hay up to their chins,
- and looked out over the half-door at the solemn, star-powdered
- sky till they seemed to be falling upside down into it, while Mr
- Culpeper talked about 'trines' and 'oppositions' and 'conjunctions'
- and 'sympathies' and 'antipathies' in a tone that just
- matched things.
-
- A rat ran between Middenboro's feet, and the old pony stamped.
-
- 'Mid hates rats,' said Dan, and passed him over a lock of hay. 'I
- wonder why.'
-
- 'Divine Astrology tells us,' said Mr Culpeper. 'The horse,
- being a martial beast that beareth man to battle, belongs naturally
- to the red planet Mars - the Lord of War. I would show you him,
- but he's too near his setting. Rats and mice, doing their businesses
- by night, come under the dominion of our Lady the Moon. Now
- between Mars and Luna, the one red, t'other white, the one hot
- t'other cold and so forth, stands, as I have told you, a natural
- antipathy, or, as you say, hatred. Which antipathy their creatures
- do inherit. Whence, good people, you may both see and hear your
- cattle stamp in their stalls for the self-same causes as decree the
- passages of the stars across the unalterable face of Heaven! Ahem!'
- Puck lay along chewing a leaf. They felt him shake with
- laughter, and Mr Culpeper sat up stiffly.
-
- 'I myself" said he, 'have saved men's lives, and not a few
- neither, by observing at the proper time - there is a time, mark
- you, for all things under the sun - by observing, I say, so small a
- beast as a rat in conjunction with so great a matter as this dread
- arch above us.' He swept his hand across the sky. 'Yet there are
- those,' he went on sourly, 'who have years without knowledge.'
-
- 'Right,' said Puck. 'No fool like an old fool.'
-
- Mr Culpeper wrapped his cloak round him and sat still while
- the children stared at the Great Bear on the hilltop.
-
- 'Give him time,' Puck whispered behind his hand. 'He turns
- like a timber-tug - all of a piece.'
-
- 'Ahem!' Mr Culpeper said suddenly. 'I'll prove it to you. When
- I was physician to Saye's Horse, and fought the King - or rather
- the man Charles Stuart - in Oxfordshire (I had my learning at
- Cambridge), the plague was very hot all around us. I saw it at
- close hands. He who says I am ignorant of the plague, for
- example, is altogether beside the bridge.'
-
- 'We grant it,' said Puck solemnly. 'But why talk of the plague
- this rare night?'
-
- 'To prove my argument. This Oxfordshire plague, good
- people, being generated among rivers and ditches, was of a
- werish, watery nature. Therefore it was curable by drenching the
- patient in cold water, and laying him in wet cloths; or at least, so I
- cured some of them. Mark this. It bears on what shall come after.'
-
- 'Mark also, Nick,' said Puck, that we are not your College of
- Physicians, but only a lad and a lass and a poor lubberkin. Therefore
- be plain, old Hyssop on the Wall!'
-
- 'To be plain and in order with you, I was shot in the chest while
- gathering of betony from a brookside near Thame, and was took
- by the King's men before their Colonel, one Blagg or Bragge,
- whom I warned honestly that I had spent the week past among
- our plague-stricken. He flung me off into a cowshed, much like
- this here, to die, as I supposed; but one of their priests crept in by
- night and dressed my wound. He was a Sussex man like myself.'
-
- 'Who was that?' said Puck suddenly. 'Zack Tutshom?'
-
- 'No, Jack Marget,' said Mr Culpeper.
-
- 'Jack Marget of New College? The little merry man that stammered
- so? Why a plague was stuttering Jack at Oxford then?' said Puck.
-
- 'He had come out of Sussex in hope of being made a Bishop
- when the King should have conquered the rebels, as he styled us
- Parliament men. His College had lent the King some monies too,
- which they never got again, no more than simple Jack got his
- bishopric. When we met he had had a bitter bellyful of King's
- promises, and wished to return to his wife and babes. This came
- about beyond expectation, for, so soon as I could stand of my
- wound, the man Blagge made excuse that I had been among the
- plague, and Jack had been tending me, to thrust us both out from
- their camp. The King had done with Jack now that Jack's College
- had lent the money, and Blagge's physician could not abide me
- because I would not sit silent and see him butcher the sick. (He
- was a College of Physicians man!) So Blagge, I say, thrust us both
- out, with many vile words, for a pair of pestilent, prating,
- pragmatical rascals.'
-
- 'Ha! Called you pragmatical, Nick?' Puck started up. 'High
- time Oliver came to purge the land! How did you and honest Jack
- fare next?'
-
- 'We were in some sort constrained to each other's company. I
- was for going to my house in Spitalfields, he would go to his
- parish in Sussex; but the plague was broke out and spreading
- through Wiltshire, Berkshire, and Hampshire, and he was so mad
- distracted to think that it might even then be among his folk at
- home that I bore him company. He had comforted me in my
- distress. I could not have done less; and I remembered that I had a
- cousin at Great Wigsell, near by Jack's parish. Thus we footed it
- from Oxford, cassock and buff coat together, resolute to leave
- wars on the left side henceforth; and either through our mean
- appearances, or the plague making men less cruel, we were not
- hindered. To be sure, they put us in the stocks one half-day for
- rogues and vagabonds at a village under St Leonard's forest,
- where, as I have heard, nightingales never sing; but the constable
- very honestly gave me back my Astrological Almanac, which I
- carry with me.' Mr Culpeper tapped his thin chest. 'I dressed a
- whitlow on his thumb. So we went forward.
-
- 'Not to trouble you with impertinences, we fetched over
- against Jack Marget's parish in a storm of rain about the day's end.
- Here our roads divided, for I would have gone on to my cousin at
- Great Wigsell, but while Jack was pointing me out his steeple, we
- saw a man lying drunk, as he conceived, athwart the road. He said
- it would be one Hebden, a parishioner, and till then a man of good
- life; and he accused himself bitterly for an unfaithful shepherd,
- that had left his flock to follow princes. But I saw it was the
- plague, and not the beginnings of it neither. They had set out the
- plague-stone, and the man's head lay on it.'
-
- 'What's a plague-stone?' Dan whispered.
-
- 'When the plague is so hot in a village that the neighbours shut
- the roads against 'em, people set a hollowed stone, pot, or pan,
- where such as would purchase victual from outside may lay
- money and the paper of their wants, and depart. Those that
- would sell come later - what will a man not do for gain? - snatch
- the money forth, and leave in exchange such goods as their
- conscience reckons fair value. I saw a silver groat in the water, and
- the man's list of what he would buy was rain-pulped in his wet hand.
-
- '"My wife! Oh, my wife and babes!" says Jack of a sudden,
- and makes uphill - I with him.
-
- 'A woman peers out from behind a barn, crying out that the
- village is stricken with the plague, and that for our lives' sake we
- must avoid it.
-
- '"Sweetheart!" says Jack. "Must I avoid thee?" and she leaps at
- him and says the babes are safe. She was his wife.
-
- 'When he had thanked God, even to tears, he tells me this was
- not the welcome he had intended, and presses me to flee the place
- while I was clean.
-
- '"Nay! The Lord do so to me and more also if I desert thee now,"
- I said. "These affairs are, under God's leave, in some
- fashion my strength."
-
- '"Oh, sir," she says, "are you a physician? We have none."
-
- '"Then, good people," said I, "I must e'en justify myself to
- you by my works."
-
- '"Look - look ye," stammers Jack, "I took you all this time for
- a crazy Roundhead preacher." He laughs, and she, and then I - all
- three together in the rain are overtook by an unreasonable gust or
- clap of laughter, which none the less eased us. We call it in
- medicine the Hysterical Passion. So I went home with 'em.'
-
- 'Why did you not go on to your cousin at Great Wigsell, Nick?'
- Puck suggested. ''tis barely seven mile up the road.'
-
- 'But the plague was here,' Mr Culpeper answered, and pointed
- up the hill. 'What else could I have done?'
-
- 'What were the parson's children called?' said Una.
-
- 'Elizabeth, Alison, Stephen, and Charles - a babe. I scarce saw
- them at first, for I separated to live with their father in a cart-
- lodge. The mother we put - forced - into the house with her
- babes. She had done enough.
-
- 'And now, good people, give me leave to be particular in this
- case. The plague was worst on the north side of the street, for
- lack, as I showed 'em, of sunshine; which, proceeding from the
- PRIME MOBILE, or source of life (I speak astrologically), is cleansing
- and purifying in the highest degree. The plague was hot too
- by the corn-chandler's, where they sell forage to the carters,
- extreme hot in both Mills, along the river, and scatteringly in
- other places, except, mark you, at the smithy. Mark here, that all
- forges and smith shops belong to Mars, even as corn and meat and
- wine shops acknowledge Venus for their mistress. There was no
- plague in the smithy at Munday's Lane -'
-
- 'Munday's Lane? You mean our village? I thought so when you
- talked about the two Mills,' cried Dan. 'Where did we put the
- plague-stone? I'd like to have seen it.'
-
- 'Then look at it now,' said Puck, and pointed to the chickens'
- drinking-trough where they had set their bicycle lamps. It was a
- rough, oblong stone pan, rather like a small kitchen sink, which
- Phillips, who never wastes anything, had found in a ditch and had
- used for his precious hens.
-
- 'That?' said Dan and Una, and stared, and stared, and stared.
- Mr Culpeper made impatient noises in his throat and went on.
-
- 'I am at these pains to be particular, good people, because I
- would have you follow, so far as you may, the operations of my
- mind. That plague which I told you I had handled outside Wallingford
- in Oxfordshire was of a watery nature, conformable to
- the brookish riverine country it bred in, and curable, as I have
- said, by drenching in water. This plague of ours here, for all that it
- flourished along watercourses - every soul at both Mills died of it, -
- could not be so handled. Which brought me to a stand. Ahem!'
-
- 'And your sick people in the meantime?'Puck demanded.
- 'We persuaded them on the north side of the street to lie out in
- Hitheram's field. Where the plague had taken one, or at most
- two, in a house, folk would not shift for fear of thieves in their
- absence. They cast away their lives to die among their goods.'
-
- 'Human nature,' said Puck. 'I've seen it time and again. How
- did your sick do in the fields?'
-
- 'They died not near so thick as those that kept within doors,
- and even then they died more out of distraction and melancholy
- than plague. But I confess, good people, I could not in any sort
- master the sickness, or come at a glimmer of its nature or
- governance. To be brief, I was flat bewildered at the brute
- malignity of the disease, and so - did what I should have done
- before - dismissed all conjectures and apprehensions that had
- grown up within me, chose a good hour by my Almanac, clapped my
- vinegar-cloth to my face, and entered some empty houses,
- resigned to wait upon the stars for guidance.'
-
- 'At night? Were you not horribly frightened?' said Puck.
-
- 'I dared to hope that the God who hath made man so nobly
- curious to search out His mysteries might not destroy a devout
- seeker. In due time - there's a time, as I have said, for everything
- under the sun - I spied a whitish rat, very puffed and scabby,
- which sat beneath the dormer of an attic through which shined
- our Lady the Moon. Whilst I looked on him - and her - she was
- moving towards old cold Saturn, her ancient ally - the rat creeped
- languishingly into her light, and there, before my eyes, died.
- Presently his mate or companion came out, laid him down beside
- there, and in like fashion died too. Later - an hour or less to
- midnight - a third rat did e'en the same; always choosing the
- moonlight to die in. This threw me into an amaze, since, as we
- know, the moonlight is favourable, not hurtful, to the creatures
- of the Moon; and Saturn, being friends with her, as you would
- say, was hourly strengthening her evil influence. Yet these three
- rats had been stricken dead in very moonlight. I leaned out of the
- window to see which of Heaven's host might be on our side, and
- there beheld I good trusty Mars, very red and heated, bustling
- about his setting. I straddled the roof to see better.
-
- 'Jack Marget came up street going to comfort our sick in
- Hitheram's field. A tile slipped under my foot.
-
- Says he, heavily enough, "Watchman, what of the night?"
-
- '"Heart up, Jack," says I. "Methinks there's one fighting for us
- that, like a fool, I've forgot all this summer." My meaning was
- naturally the planet Mars.
-
- '"Pray to Him then," says he. "I forgot Him too this summer."
-
- 'He meant God, whom he always bitterly accused himself of
- having forgotten up in Oxfordshire, among the King's men. I
- called down that he had made amends enough for his sin by his
- work among the sick, but he said he would not believe so till the
- plague was lifted from 'em. He was at his strength's end - more
- from melancholy than any just cause. I have seen this before
- among priests and overcheerful men. I drenched him then and
- there with a half-cup of waters, which I do not say cure the
- plague, but are excellent against heaviness of the spirits.'
-
- 'What were they?' said Dan.
-
- 'White brandy rectified, camphor, cardamoms, ginger, two
- sorts of pepper, and aniseed.'
- 'Whew!' said Puck. 'Waters you call 'em!'
-
- 'Jack coughed on it valiantly, and went downhill with me. I
- was for the Lower Mill in the valley, to note the aspect of the
- Heavens. My mind had already shadowed forth the reason, if not
- the remedy, for our troubles, but I would not impart it to the
- vulgar till I was satisfied. That practice may be perfect, judgment
- ought to be sound, and to make judgment sound is required an
- exquisite knowledge. Ahem! I left Jack and his lantern among the
- sick in Hitheram's field. He still maintained the prayers of the
- so-called Church, which were rightly forbidden by Cromwell.'
-
- 'You should have told your cousin at Wigsell,' said Puck, 'and
- Jack would have been fined for it, and you'd have had half the
- money. How did you come so to fail in your duty, Nick?'
-
- Mr Culpeper laughed - his only laugh that evening - and the
- children jumped at the loud neigh of it.
-
- 'We were not fearful of men's judgment in those days,' he
- answered. 'Now mark me closely, good people, for what follows
- will be to you, though not to me, remarkable. When I reached the
- empty Mill, old Saturn, low down in the House of the Fishes,
- threatened the Sun's rising-place. Our Lady the Moon was
- moving towards the help of him (understand, I speak
- astrologically). I looked abroad upon the high Heavens, and I
- prayed the Maker of 'em for guidance. Now Mars sparkingly withdrew
- himself below the sky. On the instant of his departure, which I
- noted, a bright star or vapour leaped forth above his head (as
- though he had heaved up his sword), and broke all about in fire.
- The cocks crowed midnight through the valley, and I sat me
- down by the mill-wheel, chewing spearmint (though that's an
- herb of Venus), and calling myself all the asses' heads in the
- world! 'Twas plain enough now!'
-
- 'What was plain?' said Una.
-
- 'The true cause and cure of the plague. Mars, good fellow, had
- fought for us to the uttermost. Faint though he had been in the
- Heavens, and this had made me overlook him in my computations,
- he more than any of the other planets had kept the Heavens
- - which is to say, had been visible some part of each night
- wellnigh throughout the year. Therefore his fierce and cleansing
- influence, warring against the Moon, had stretched out to kill
- those three rats under my nose, and under the nose of their natural
- mistress, the Moon. I had known Mars lean half across Heaven to
- deal our Lady the Moon some shrewd blow from under his
- shield, but I had never before seen his strength displayed so
- effectual.'
-
- 'I don't understand a bit. Do you mean Mars killed the rats
- because he hated the Moon?' said Una.
-
- 'That is as plain as the pikestaff with which Blagge's men
- pushed me forth,'Mr Culpeper answered. 'I'll prove it. Why had
- the plague not broken out at the blacksmith's shop in Munday's
- Lane? Because, as I've shown you, forges and smithies belong
- naturally to Mars, and, for his honour's sake, Mars 'ud keep 'em
- clean from the creatures of the Moon. But was it like, think you,
- that he'd come down and rat-catch in general for lazy, ungrateful
- mankind? That were working a willing horse to death. So, then,
- you can see that the meaning of the blazing star above him when
- he set was simply this: "Destroy and burn the creatures Of the
- moon, for they are the root of your trouble. And thus, having
- shown you a taste of my power, good people, adieu."'
-
- 'Did Mars really say all that?' Una whispered.
-
- 'Yes, and twice so much as that to any one who had ears to hear.
- Briefly, he enlightened me that the plague was spread by the
- creatures of the Moon. The Moon, our Lady of ill-aspect, was the
- offender. My own poor wits showed me that I, Nick Culpeper,
- had the people in my charge, God's good providence aiding me,
- and no time to lose neither.
-
- 'I posted up the hill, and broke into Hitheram's field amongst
- 'em all at prayers.
-
- '"Eureka, good people!" I cried, and cast down a dead mill-rat
- which I'd found. "Here's your true enemy, revealed at last
- by the stars."
-
- '"Nay, but I'm praying," says Jack. His face was as white as
- washed silver.
-
- '"There's a time for everything under the sun," says I. "If you
- would stay the plague, take and kill your rats."
-
- '"Oh, mad, stark mad!" says he, and wrings his hands.
-
- 'A fellow lay in the ditch beside him, who bellows that he'd as
- soon die mad hunting rats as be preached to death on a cold
- fallow. They laughed round him at this, but Jack Marget falls on
- his knees, and very presumptuously petitions that he may be
- appointed to die to save the rest of his people. This was enough to
- thrust 'em back into their melancholy.
- '"You are an unfaithful shepherd, jack," I says. "Take a bat"
- (which we call a stick in Sussex) "and kill a rat if you die before
- sunrise. 'Twill save your people."
-
- '"Aye, aye. Take a bat and kill a rat," he says ten times over,
- like a child, which moved 'em to ungovernable motions of that
- hysterical passion before mentioned, so that they laughed all, and
- at least warmed their chill bloods at that very hour - one o'clock
- or a little after - when the fires of life burn lowest. Truly there is a
- time for everything; and the physician must work with it - ahem!
- - or miss his cure. To be brief with you, I persuaded 'em, sick or
- sound, to have at the whole generation of rats throughout the
- village. And there's a reason for all things too, though the wise
- physician need not blab 'em all. Imprimis, or firstly, the mere sport
- of it, which lasted ten days, drew 'em most markedly out of their
- melancholy. I'd defy sorrowful job himself to lament or scratch
- while he's routing rats from a rick. Secundo, or secondly, the
- vehement act and operation of this chase or war opened their skins
- to generous transpiration - more vulgarly, sweated 'em handsomely;
- and this further drew off their black bile - the mother of
- sickness. Thirdly, when we came to burn the bodies of the rats, I
- sprinkled sulphur on the faggots, whereby the onlookers were as
- handsomely suffumigated. This I could not have compassed if I
- had made it a mere physician's business; they'd have thought it
- some conjuration. Yet more, we cleansed, limed, and burned out
- a hundred foul poke-holes, sinks, slews, and corners of unvisited
- filth in and about the houses in the village, and by good fortune
- (mark here that Mars was in opposition to Venus) burned the
- corn-handler's shop to the ground. Mars loves not Venus. Will
- Noakes the saddler dropped his lantern on a truss of straw while
- he was rat-hunting there.'
-
- 'Had ye given Will any of that gentle cordial of yours, Nick, by
- any chance?' said Puck.
-
- 'A glass - or two glasses - not more. But as I would say, in fine,
- when we had killed the rats, I took ash, slag, and charcoal from
- the smithy, and burnt earth from the brickyard (I reason that a
- brickyard belongs to Mars), and rammed it with iron crowbars
- into the rat-runs and buries, and beneath all the house floors. The
- Creatures of the Moon hate all that Mars hath used for his own
- clean ends. For example - rats bite not iron.'
-
- 'And how did poor stuttering Jack endure it?' said Puck.
-
- 'He sweated out his melancholy through his skin, and catched
- a loose cough, which I cured with electuaries, according to art. It is
- noteworthy, were I speaking among my equals, that the venom
- of the plague translated, or turned itself into, and evaporated, or
- went away as, a very heavy hoarseness and thickness of the head,
- throat, and chest. (Observe from my books which planets govern
- these portions of man's body, and your darkness, good people,
- shall be illuminated - ahem!) None the less, the plague, qua
- plague, ceased and took off (for we only lost three more, and two
- of 'em had it already on 'em) from the morning of the day that
- Mars enlightened me by the Lower Mill.' He coughed - almost
- trumpeted - triumphantly.
-
- 'It is proved,' he jerked out. 'I say I have proved my contention,
- which is, that by Divine Astrology and humble search into the
- veritable causes of things - at the proper time - the sons of
- wisdom may combat even the plague.'
-
- H'm!' Puck replied. 'For my own part I hold that a simple soul -'
-
- 'Mine? Simple, forsooth?' said Mr Culpeper.
-
- 'A very simple soul, a high courage tempered with sound and
- stubborn conceit, is stronger than all the stars in their courses.
- So I confess truly that you saved the village, Nick.'
-
- 'I stubborn? I stiff-necked? I ascribed all my poor success,
- under God's good providence, to Divine Astrology. Not to me the
- glory! You talk as that dear weeping ass Jack Marget preached
- before I went back to my work in Red Lion House, Spitalfields.'
-
- 'Oh! Stammering Jack preached, did he? They say he loses his
- stammer in the pulpit.'
-
- 'And his wits with it. He delivered a most idolatrous discourse
- when the plague was stayed. He took for his text: "The wise man
- that delivered the city." I could have given him a better, such as:
- "There is a time for-" '
-
- 'But what made you go to church to hear him?' Puck
- interrupted. 'Wail Attersole was your lawfully appointed preacher,
- and a dull dog he was!'
-
- Mr Culpeper wriggled uneasily.
-
- 'The vulgar,' said he, 'the old crones and - ahem! - the children,
- Alison and the others, they dragged me to the House of Rimmon
- by the hand. I was in two minds to inform on Jack for maintaining
- the mummeries of the falsely-called Church, which, I'll prove to
- you, are founded merely on ancient fables -'
-
- 'Stick to your herbs and planets,' said Puck, laughing. 'You
- should have told the magistrates, Nick, and had Jack fined.
- Again, why did you neglect your plain duty?'
-
- 'Because - because I was kneeling, and praying, and weeping
- with the rest of 'em at the Altar-rails. In medicine this is called the
- Hysterical Passion. It may be - it may be.'
-
- 'That's as may be,' said Puck. They heard him turn the hay.
- 'Why, your hay is half hedge-brishings,' he said. 'You don't
- expect a horse to thrive on oak and ash and thorn leaves, do you?'
-
- Ping-ping-ping went the bicycle bell round the corner. Nurse
- was coming back from the mill.
-
- 'Is it all right?' Una called.
-
- 'All quite right,' Nurse called back. 'They're to be christened
- next Sunday.'
-
- 'What? What?' They both leaned forward across the half-door.
- it could not have been properly fastened, for it opened, and tilted
- them out with hay and leaves sticking all over them.
-
- 'Come on! We must get those two twins' names,' said Una, and
- they charged uphill shouting over the hedge, till Nurse slowed up
- and told them.
- When they returned, old Middenboro had got out of his stall,
- and they spent a lively ten minutes chasing him in again
- by starlight.
-
-
-
- 'Our Fathers of Old'
-
-
- Excellent herbs had our fathers of old -
- Excellent herbs to ease their pain -
- Alexanders and Marigold,
- Eyebright, Orris, and Elecampane,
- Basil, Rocket, Valerian, Rue,
- (Almost singing themselves they run)
- Vervain, Dittany, Call-me-to-you -
- Cowslip, Melilot, Rose of the Sun.
- Anything green that grew out of the mould
- Was an excellent herb to our fathers of old.
-
- Wonderful tales had our fathers of old -
- Wonderful tales of the herbs and the stars -
- The Sun was Lord of the Marigold,
- Basil and Rocket belonged to Mars.
- Pat as a sum in division it goes -
- (Every plant had a star bespoke) -
- Who but Venus should govern the Rose?
- Who but Jupiter own the Oak?
- Simply and gravely the facts are told
- In the wonderful books of our fathers of old.
-
- Wonderful little, when all is said,
- Wonderful little our fathers knew.
- Half their remedies cured you dead -
- Most of their teaching was quite untrue -
- 'Look at the stars when a patient is ill,
- (Dirt has nothing to do with disease,)
- Bleed and blister as much as you will,
- Blister and bleed him as oft as you please.'
- Whence enormous and manifold
- Errors were made by our fathers of old.
-
- Yet when the sickness was sore in the land,
- And neither planet nor herb assuaged,
- They took their lives in their lancet-hand
- And, oh, what a wonderful war they waged!
- Yes, when the crosses were chalked on the door -
- Yes, when the terrible dead-cart rolled,
- Excellent courage our fathers bore -
- Excellent heart had our fathers of old.
- Not too learned, but nobly bold,
- Into the fight went our fathers of old.
-
- If it be certain, as Galen says,
- And sage Hippocrates holds as much -
- 'That those afflicted by doubts and dismays
- Are mightily helped by a dead man's touch,'
- Then, be good to us, stars above!
- Then, be good to us, herbs below!
- We are afflicted by what we can prove;
- We are distracted by what we know -
- So - ah, so!
- Down from your Heaven or up from your mould,
- Send us the hearts of our fathers of old!
-
-
-
-
- SIMPLE SIMON
-
-
-
- The Thousandth Man
-
-
- One man in a thousand, Solomon says,
- Will stick more close than a brother.
- And it's worth while seeking him half your days
- If you find him before the other.
- Nine hundred and ninety-nine depend
- on what the world sees in you,
- But the Thousandth Man will stand your friend
- With the whole round world agin you.
-
- 'Tis neither promise nor prayer nor show
- Will settle the finding for 'ee.
- Nine hundred and ninety-nine of 'em go
- By your looks or your acts or your glory.
- But if he finds you and you find him,
- The rest of the world don't matter;
- For the Thousandth Man will sink or swim
- With you in any water.
-
- You can use his purse with no more shame
- Than he uses yours for his spendings;
- And laugh and mention it just the same
- As though there had been no lendings.
- Nine hundred and ninety-nine of 'em call
- For silver and gold in their dealings;
- But the Thousandth Man he's worth 'em all,
- Because you can show him your feelings!
-
- His wrong's your wrong, and his right's your right,
- In season or out of season.
- Stand up and back it in all men's sight -
- With that for your only reason!
- Nine hundred and ninety-nine can't bide
- The shame or mocking or laughter,
- But the Thousandth Man will stand by your side
- To the gallows-foot - and after!
-
-
-
- Simple Simon
-
-
- Cattiwow came down the steep lane with his five-horse timber-
- tug. He stopped by the wood-lump at the back gate to take off the
- brakes. His real name was Brabon, but the first time the children
- met him, years and years ago, he told them he was 'carting
- wood,' and it sounded so exactly like 'cattiwow' that they never
- called him anything else.
-
- 'HI!' Una shouted from the top of the wood-lump, where they
- had been watching the lane. 'What are you doing? Why weren't
- we told?'
-
- 'They've just sent for me,' Cattiwow answered. 'There's a
- middlin' big log stacked in the dirt at Rabbit Shaw, and' - he
- flicked his whip back along the line - 'so they've sent for us all.'
-
- Dan and Una threw themselves off the wood-lump almost
- under black Sailor's nose. Cattiwow never let them ride the big
- beam that makes the body of the timber-tug, but they hung on
- behind while their teeth thuttered.
-
- The Wood road beyond the brook climbs at once into the
- woods, and you see all the horses' backs rising, one above
- another, like moving stairs. Cattiwow strode ahead in his
- sackcloth woodman's petticoat, belted at the waist with a leather
- strap; and when he turned and grinned, his red lips showed under
- his sackcloth-coloured beard. His cap was sackcloth too, with a
- flap behind, to keep twigs and bark out of his neck. He navigated
- the tug among pools of heather-water that splashed in their faces,
- and through clumps of young birches that slashed at their legs,
- and when they hit an old toadstooled stump, they never knew
- whether it would give way in showers of rotten wood, or jar
- them back again.
-
- At the top of Rabbit Shaw half-a-dozen men and a team of
- horses stood round a forty-foot oak log in a muddy hollow. The
- ground about was poached and stoached with sliding hoofmarks,
- and a wave of dirt was driven up in front of the butt.
-
- 'What did you want to bury her for this way?' said Cattiwow.
- He took his broad-axe and went up the log tapping it.
-
- 'She's sticked fast,' said 'Bunny' Lewknor, who managed the
- other team.
-
- Cattiwow unfastened the five wise horses from the tug. They
- cocked their ears forward, looked, and shook themselves.
-
- 'I believe Sailor knows,' Dan whispered to Una.
-
- 'He do,' said a man behind them. He was dressed in flour sacks
- like the others, and he leaned on his broad-axe, but the children,
- who knew all the wood-gangs, knew he was a stranger. In his size
- and oily hairiness he might have been Bunny Lewknor's brother,
- except that his brown eyes were as soft as a spaniel's, and his
- rounded black beard, beginning close up under them, reminded
- Una of the walrus in 'The Walrus and the Carpenter.'
-
- 'Don't he justabout know?' he said shyly, and shifted from one
- foot to the other.
-
- 'Yes. "What Cattiwow can't get out of the woods must have
- roots growing to her."' Dan had heard old Hobden say this a
- few days before.
-
- At that minute Puck pranced up, picking his way through the
- pools of black water in the ling.
-
- 'Look out!' cried Una, jumping forward. 'He'll see you, Puck!'
-
- 'Me and Mus' Robin are pretty middlin' well acquainted,' the
- man answered with a smile that made them forget all about walruses.
-
- 'This is Simon Cheyneys,' Puck began, and cleared his throat.
- 'Shipbuilder of Rye Port; burgess of the said town, and the only -'
-
- 'Oh, look! Look ye! That's a knowing one,' said the man.
-
- Cattiwow had fastened his team to the thin end of the log, and
- was moving them about with his whip till they stood at right
- angles to it, heading downhill. Then he grunted. The horses took
- the strain, beginning with Sailor next the log, like a tug-of-war
- team, and dropped almost to their knees. The log shifted a nail's
- breadth in the clinging dirt, with the noise of a giant's kiss.
-
- 'You're getting her!' Simon Cheyneys slapped his knee. 'Hing
- on! Hing on, lads, or she'll master ye! Ah!'
-
- Sailor's left hind hoof had slipped on a heather-tuft. One of the
- men whipped off his sack apron and spread it down. They saw
- Sailor feel for it, and recover. Still the log hung, and the team
- grunted in despair.
-
- 'Hai!' shouted Cattiwow, and brought his dreadful whip twice
- across Sailor's loins with the crack of a shot-gun. The horse
- almost screamed as he pulled that extra last ounce which he did
- not know was in him. The thin end of the log left the dirt and
- rasped on dry gravel. The butt ground round like a buffalo in his
- wallow. Quick as an axe-cut, Lewknor snapped on his five
- horses, and sliding, trampling, jingling, and snorting, they had
- the whole thing out on the heather.
-
- 'Dat's the very first time I've knowed you lay into Sailor - to
- hurt him,' said Lewknor.
-
- 'It is,' said Cattiwow, and passed his hand over the two wheals.
- 'But I'd ha' laid my own brother open at that pinch. Now we'll
- twitch her down the hill a piece - she lies just about right - and get
- her home by the low road. My team'll do it, Bunny; you bring the
- tug along. Mind out!'
-
- He spoke to the horses, who tightened the chains. The great log
- half rolled over, and slowly drew itself out of sight downhill,
- followed by the wood-gang and the timber-tug. In half a minute
- there was nothing to see but the deserted hollow of the torn-up
- dirt, the birch undergrowth still shaking, and the water draining
- back into the hoof-prints.
-
- 'Ye heard him?' Simon Cheyneys asked. 'He cherished his
- horse, but he'd ha' laid him open in that pinch.'
-
- 'Not for his own advantage,' said Puck quickly. ''Twas only
- to shift the log.'
-
- 'I reckon every man born of woman has his log to shift in the
- world - if so be you're hintin' at any o' Frankie's doings. He never
- hit beyond reason or without reason,' said Simon.
-
- 'I never said a word against Frankie,' Puck retorted, with a
- wink at the children. 'An' if I did, do it lie in your mouth to
- contest my say-so, seeing how you -'
-
- 'Why don't it lie in my mouth, seeing I was the first which
- knowed Frankie for all he was?' The burly sack-clad man puffed
- down at cool little Puck.
-
- 'Yes, and the first which set out to poison him - Frankie - on
- the high seas -'
-
- Simon's angry face changed to a sheepish grin. He waggled his
- immense hands, but Puck stood off and laughed mercilessly.
-
- 'But let me tell you, Mus' Robin,'he pleaded.
-
- 'I've heard the tale. Tell the children here. Look, Dan! Look,
- Una!' - Puck's straight brown finger levelled like an arrow.
- 'There's the only man that ever tried to poison Sir Francis Drake!'
-
- 'Oh, Mus' Robin! 'Tidn't fair. You've the 'vantage of us all in
- your upbringin's by hundreds o' years. Stands to nature you
- know all the tales against every one.'
-
- He turned his soft eyes so helplessly on Una that she cried,
- 'Stop ragging him, Puck! You know he didn't really.'
-
- 'I do. But why are you so sure, little maid?'
- 'Because - because he doesn't look like it,' said Una stoutly.
-
- 'I thank you,' said Simon to Una. 'I - I was always trustable-
- like with children if you let me alone, you double handful o'
- mischief.' He pretended to heave up his axe on Puck; and then his
- shyness overtook him afresh.
-
- 'Where did you know Sir Francis Drake?' said Dan, not liking
- being called a child.
-
- 'At Rye Port, to be sure,' said Simon, and seeing Dan's
- bewilderment, repeated it.
-
- 'Yes, but look here,'said Dan. '"Drake he was a Devon man."
- The song says so.'
-
- '"And ruled the Devon seas,"' Una went on. 'That's what I
- was thinking - if you don't mind.'
-
- Simon Cheyneys seemed to mind very much indeed, for he
- swelled in silence while Puck laughed.
-
- 'Hutt!' he burst out at last, 'I've heard that talk too. If you listen
- to them West Country folk, you'll listen to a pack o' lies. I believe
- Frankie was born somewhere out west among the Shires, but his
- father had to run for it when Frankie was a baby, because the
- neighbours was wishful to kill him, d'ye see? He run to Chatham,
- old Parson Drake did, an' Frankie was brought up in a old hulks of
- a ship moored in the Medway river, same as it might ha' been the
- Rother. Brought up at sea, you might say, before he could walk
- on land - nigh Chatham in Kent. And ain't Kent back-door to
- Sussex? And don't that make Frankie Sussex? O' course it do.
- Devon man! Bah! Those West Country boats they're always
- fishin' in other folks' water.'
-
- 'I beg your pardon,' said Dan. 'I'm sorry .
-
- 'No call to be sorry. You've been misled. I met Frankie at Rye
- Port when my Uncle, that was the shipbuilder there, pushed me
- off his wharf-edge on to Frankie's ship. Frankie had put in from
- Chatham with his rudder splutted, and a man's arm - Moon's that
- 'ud be - broken at the tiller. "Take this boy aboard an' drown
- him," says my Uncle, "and I'll mend your rudder-piece for love."
-
- 'What did your Uncle want you drowned for?'said Una.
-
- 'That was only his fashion of say-so, same as Mus' Robin. I'd a
- foolishness in my head that ships could be builded out of iron. Yes
- - iron ships! I'd made me a liddle toy one of iron plates beat out
- thin - and she floated a wonder! But my Uncle, bein' a burgess of
- Rye, and a shipbuilder, he 'prenticed me to Frankie in the fetchin'
- trade, to cure this foolishness.'
-
- 'What was the fetchin' trade?' Dan interrupted.
-
- 'Fetchin' poor Flemishers and Dutchmen out o' the Low
- Countries into England. The King o' Spain, d'ye see, he was burnin'
- 'em in those parts, for to make 'em Papishers, so Frankie he
- fetched 'em away to our parts, and a risky trade it was. His master
- wouldn't never touch it while he lived, but he left his ship to
- Frankie when he died, and Frankie turned her into this fetchin'
- trade. Outrageous cruel hard work - on besom-black nights
- bulting back and forth off they Dutch roads with shoals on all
- sides, and having to hark out for the frish-frish-frish-like of a
- Spanish galliwopses' oars creepin' up on ye. Frankie 'ud have the
- tiller and Moon he'd peer forth at the bows, our lantern under his
- skirts, till the boat we was lookin' for 'ud blurt up out o' the dark,
- and we'd lay hold and haul aboard whoever 'twas - man, woman,
- or babe - an' round we'd go again, the wind bewling like a kite in
- our riggin's, and they'd drop into the hold and praise God for
- happy deliverance till they was all sick.
-
- 'I had nigh a year at it, an' we must have fetched off - oh, a
- hundred pore folk, I reckon. Outrageous bold, too, Frankie
- growed to be. Outrageous cunnin' he was. Once we was as near
- as nothin' nipped by a tall ship off Tergoes Sands in a snowstorm.
- She had the wind of us, and spooned straight before it, shootin' all
- bow guns. Frankie fled inshore smack for the beach, till he was
- atop of the first breakers. Then he hove his anchor out, which
- nigh tore our bows off, but it twitched us round end-for-end into
- the wind, d'ye see, an' we clawed off them sands like a drunk man
- rubbin' along a tavern bench. When we could see, the Spanisher
- was laid flat along in the breakers with the snows whitening on his
- wet belly. He thought he could go where Frankie went.'
-
- 'What happened to the crew?' said Una.
-
- 'We didn't stop,' Simon answered. 'There was a very liddle
- new baby in our hold, and the mother she wanted to get to some
- dry bed middlin' quick. We runned into Dover, and said nothing.'
-
- 'Was Sir Francis Drake very much pleased?'
- 'Heart alive, maid, he'd no head to his name in those days. He
- was just a outrageous, valiant, crop-haired, tutt-mouthed boy,
- roarin' up an' down the narrer seas, with his beard not yet quilted
- out. He made a laughing-stock of everything all day, and he'd
- hold our lives in the bight of his arm all the besom-black night
- among they Dutch sands; and we'd ha' jumped overside to
- behove him any one time, all of us.'
-
- 'Then why did you try to poison him?' Una asked wickedly,
- and Simon hung his head like a shy child.
-
- 'Oh, that was when he set me to make a pudden, for because
- our cook was hurted. I done my uttermost, but she all fetched
- adrift like in the bag, an' the more I biled the bits of her, the less
- she favoured any fashion o' pudden. Moon he chawed and
- chammed his piece, and Frankie chawed and chammed his'n, and
- - no words to it - he took me by the ear an' walked me out over
- the bow-end, an' him an' Moon hove the pudden at me on the
- bowsprit gub by gub, something cruel hard!' Simon rubbed his
- hairy cheek.
-
- '"Nex' time you bring me anything," says Frankie, "you
- bring me cannon-shot an' I'll know what I'm getting." But as for
- poisonin' -' He stopped, the children laughed so.
-
- 'Of course you didn't,' said Una. 'Oh, Simon, we do like you!'
-
- 'I was always likeable with children.' His smile crinkled up
- through the hair round his eyes. 'Simple Simon they used to call
- me through our yard gates.'
-
- 'Did Sir Francis mock you?' Dan asked.
-
- 'Ah, no. He was gentle-born. Laugh he did - he was always
- laughing - but not so as to hurt a feather. An' I loved 'en. I loved
- 'en before England knew 'en, or Queen Bess she broke his heart.'
-
- 'But he hadn't really done anything when you knew him, had
- he?' Una insisted. 'Armadas and those things, I mean.'
-
- Simon pointed to the scars and scrapes left by Cattiwow's great
- log. 'You tell me that that good ship's timber never done nothing
- against winds and weathers since her up-springing, and I'll
- confess ye that young Frankie never done nothing neither.
- Nothing? He adventured and suffered and made shift on they
- Dutch sands as much in any one month as ever he had occasion for
- to do in a half-year on the high seas afterwards. An' what was his
- tools? A coaster boat - a liddle box o' walty plankin' an' some few
- fathom feeble rope held together an' made able by him sole. He
- drawed our spirits up In our bodies same as a chimney-towel
- draws a fire. 'Twas in him, and it comed out all times and shapes.'
- 'I wonder did he ever 'magine what he was going to be? Tell
- himself stories about it?' said Dan with a flush.
-
- 'I expect so. We mostly do - even when we're grown. But bein'
- Frankie, he took good care to find out beforehand what his
- fortune might be. Had I rightly ought to tell 'em this piece?'
- Simon turned to Puck, who nodded.
-
- 'My Mother, she was just a fair woman, but my Aunt, her
- sister, she had gifts by inheritance laid up in her,' Simon began.
-
- 'Oh, that'll never do,' cried Puck, for the children stared
- blankly. 'Do you remember what Robin promised to the Widow
- Whitgift so long as her blood and get lasted?" [See 'Dymchurch
- Flit' in PUCK OF POOK'S HILL.]
- 'Yes. There was always to be one of them that could see farther
- through a millstone than most,' Dan answered promptly.
-
- 'Well, Simon's Aunt's mother,' said Puck slowly, 'married the
- Widow's blind son on the Marsh, and Simon's Aunt was the one
- chosen to see farthest through millstones. Do you understand?'
-
- 'That was what I was gettin' at,' said Simon, 'but you're so
- desperate quick. My Aunt she knew what was comin' to people.
- My Uncle being a burgess of Rye, he counted all such things
- odious, and my Aunt she couldn't be got to practise her gifts
- hardly at all, because it hurted her head for a week after-wards; but
- when Frankie heard she had 'em, he was all for nothin' till she
- foretold on him - till she looked in his hand to tell his fortune, d'ye
- see? One time we was at Rye she come aboard with my other shirt
- and some apples, and he fair beazled the life out of her about it.
-
- '"Oh, you'll be twice wed, and die childless," she says, and
- pushes his hand away.
-
- '"That's the woman's part," he says. "What'll come to me-to
- me?" an' he thrusts it back under her nose.
-
- '"Gold - gold, past belief or counting," she says. "Let go o'
- me, lad."
-
- '"Sink the gold!" he says. "What'll I do, mother?" He coaxed
- her like no woman could well withstand. I've seen him with 'em -
- even when they were sea-sick.
-
- '"If you will have it," she says at last, you shall have it. You'll
- do a many things, and eating and drinking with a dead man
- beyond the world's end will be the least of them. For you'll open a
- road from the East unto the West, and back again, and you'll bury
- your heart with your best friend by that road-side, and the road
- you open none shall shut so long as you're let lie quiet in your
- grave."
-
-
- [The old lady's prophecy is in a fair way to come true, for
- now the Panama Canal is finished, one end of it opens into the
- very bay where Sir Francis Drake was buried. So ships are taken
- through the Canal, and the road round Cape Horn which Sir Francis
- opened is very little used.]
-
-
- '"And if I'm not?" he says.
-
- '"Why, then," she says, "Sim's iron ships will be sailing on
- dry land. Now ha' done with this foolishness. Where's Sim's shirt?"
-
- 'He couldn't fetch no more out of her, and when we come up
- from the cabin, he stood mazed-like by the tiller, playing
- with a apple.
- '"My Sorrow!" says my Aunt; "d'ye see that? The great world
- lying in his hand, liddle and round like a apple."
-
- '"Why, 'tis one you gived him," I says.
-
- '"To be sure," she says. "'Tis just a apple," and she went
- ashore with her hand to her head. It always hurted her to show
- her gifts.
-
- Him and me puzzled over that talk plenty. It sticked in his
- mind quite extravagant. The very next time we slipped out for
- some fetchin' trade, we met Mus' Stenning's boat over by Calais
- sands; and he warned us that the Spanishers had shut down all
- their Dutch ports against us English, and their galliwopses was
- out picking up our boats like flies off hogs' backs. Mus' Stenning
- he runs for Shoreham, but Frankie held on a piece, knowin' that
- Mus Stenning was jealous of our good trade. Over by Dunkirk a
- great gor-bellied Spanisher, with the Cross on his sails, came
- rampin' at us. We left him. We left him all they bare seas to
- conquest in.
-
- '"Looks like this road was going to be shut pretty soon," says
- Frankie, humourin' her at the tiller. "I'll have to open that other
- one your Aunt foretold of."
-
- '"The Spanisher's crowdin' down on us middlin' quick," I says.
- No odds," says Frankie, "he'll have the inshore tide against
- him. Did your Aunt say I was to be quiet in my grave for ever?"
-
- '"Till my iron ships sailed dry land," I says.
-
- '"That's foolishness," he says. "Who cares where Frankie
- Drake makes a hole in the water now or twenty years from now?"
-
- 'The Spanisher kept muckin' on more and more canvas. I told
- him so.
-
- '"He's feelin' the tide," was all he says. "If he was among
- Tergoes Sands with this wind, we'd be picking his bones proper.
- I'd give my heart to have all their tall ships there some night
- before a north gale, and me to windward. There'd be gold in My
- hands then. Did your Aunt say she saw the world settin' in my
- hand, Sim?"
-
- Yes, but 'twas a apple," says I, and he laughed like he always
- did at me. "Do you ever feel minded to jump overside and be
- done with everything?" he asks after a while.
-
- '"No. What water comes aboard is too wet as 'tis," I says.
- "The Spanisher's going about."
-
- '"I told you," says he, never looking back. "He'll give us the
- Pope's Blessing as he swings. Come down off that rail. There's no
- knowin' where stray shots may hit." So I came down off the rail,
- and leaned against it, and the Spanisher he ruffled round in the
- wind, and his port-lids opened all red inside.
-
- '"Now what'll happen to my road if they don't let me lie quiet
- in my grave?" he says. "Does your Aunt mean there's two roads
- to be found and kept open - or what does she mean? I don't like
- that talk about t'other road. D'you believe in your iron
- ships, Sim?"
-
- 'He knowed I did, so I only nodded, and he nodded back again.
- '"Anybody but me 'ud call you a fool, Sim," he says. "Lie
- down. Here comes the Pope's Blessing!"
-
- 'The Spanisher gave us his broadside as he went about. They all
- fell short except one that smack-smooth hit the rail behind my
- back, an' I felt most won'erful cold.
-
- '"Be you hit anywhere to signify?" he says. "Come over to me."
-
- '"O Lord, Mus' Drake," I says, "my legs won't move," and
- that was the last I spoke for months.'
-
- 'Why? What had happened?' cried Dan and Una together.
-
- 'The rail had jarred me in here like.' Simon reached behind him
- clumsily. 'From my shoulders down I didn't act no shape. Frankie
- carried me piggyback to my Aunt's house, and I lay bed-rid and
- tongue-tied while she rubbed me day and night, month in and
- month out. She had faith in rubbing with the hands. P'raps she
- put some of her gifts into it, too. Last of all, something loosed
- itself in my pore back, and lo! I was whole restored again, but
- kitten-feeble.
-
- '"Where's Frankie?" I says, thinking I'd been a longish
- while abed.
-
- '"Down-wind amongst the Dons - months ago," says my Aunt.
-
- '"When can I go after 'en?" I says.
-
- '"Your duty's to your town and trade now," says she. "Your
- Uncle he died last Michaelmas and he've left you and me the yard.
- So no more iron ships, mind ye."
-
- '"What?" I says. "And you the only one that beleft in 'em!"
-
-
- '"Maybe I do still," she says, "but I'm a woman before I'm a
- Whitgift, and wooden ships is what England needs us to build. I
- lay on ye to do so."
-
- 'That's why I've never teched iron since that day - not to build a
- toy ship of. I've never even drawed a draft of one for my pleasure
- of evenings.' Simon smiled down on them all.
- 'Whitgift blood is terrible resolute - on the she-side,'said Puck.
-
- 'Didn't You ever see Sir Francis Drake again?'Dan asked.
-
- 'With one thing and another, and my being made a burgess of
- Rye, I never clapped eyes on him for the next twenty years. Oh, I
- had the news of his mighty doings the world over. They was the
- very same bold, cunning shifts and passes he'd worked with
- beforetimes off they Dutch sands, but, naturally, folk took more
- note of them. When Queen Bess made him knight, he sent my
- Aunt a dried orange stuffed with spiceries to smell to. She cried
- outrageous on it. She blamed herself for her foretellings, having
- set him on his won'erful road; but I reckon he'd ha' gone that way
- all withstanding. Curious how close she foretelled it! The world
- in his hand like an apple, an' he burying his best friend, Mus'
- Doughty -'
-
- 'Never mind for Mus' Doughty,' Puck interrupted. 'Tell us
- where you met Sir Francis next.'
-
- 'Oh, ha! That was the year I was made a burgess of Rye - the
- same year which King Philip sent his ships to take England
- without Frankie's leave.'
-
- 'The Armada!' said Dan contentedly. 'I was hoping that
- would come.'
-
- 'I knowed Frankie would never let 'em smell London smoke,
- but plenty good men in Rye was two-three minded about the
- upshot. 'Twas the noise of the gun-fire tarrified us. The wind
- favoured it our way from off behind the Isle of Wight. It made a
- mutter like, which growed and growed, and by the end of a week
- women was shruckin' in the streets. Then they come slidderin'
- past Fairlight in a great smoky pat vambrished with red gun-fire,
- and our ships flyin' forth and duckin' in again. The smoke-pat
- sliddered over to the French shore, so I knowed Frankie was
- edgin' the Spanishers toward they Dutch sands where he was
- master. I says to my Aunt, "The smoke's thinnin' out. I lay
- Frankie's just about scrapin' his hold for a few last rounds shot.
- 'Tis time for me to go."
-
- '"Never in them clothes," she says. "Do on the doublet I
- bought you to be made burgess in, and don't you shame this
- day."
-
- 'So I mucked it on, and my chain, and my stiffed Dutch
- breeches and all.
-
- '"I be comin', too," she says from her chamber, and forth she
- come pavisandin' like a peacock - stuff, ruff, stomacher and all.
- She was a notable woman.'
-
- 'But how did you go? You haven't told us,' said Una.
-
- 'In my own ship - but half-share was my Aunt's. In the ANTONY
- OF RYE, to be sure; and not empty-handed. I'd been loadin' her for
- three days with the pick of our yard. We was ballasted on cannon-
- shot of all three sizes; and iron rods and straps for his carpenters;
- and a nice passel of clean three-inch oak planking and hide breech-
- ropes for his cannon, and gubs of good oakum, and bolts o'
- canvas, and all the sound rope in the yard. What else could I ha'
- done? I knowed what he'd need most after a week's such work.
- I'm a shipbuilder, little maid.
-
- 'We'd a fair slant o' wind off Dungeness, and we crept on till it
- fell light airs and puffed out. The Spanishers was all in a huddle
- over by Calais, and our ships was strawed about mending
- 'emselves like dogs lickin' bites. Now and then a Spanisher would
- fire from a low port, and the ball 'ud troll across the flat swells,
- but both sides was finished fightin' for that tide.
-
- 'The first ship we foreslowed on, her breastworks was crushed
- in, an' men was shorin' 'em up. She said nothing. The next was a
- black pinnace, his pumps clackin' middling quick, and he said
- nothing. But the third, mending shot-holes, he spoke out plenty .
- I asked him where Mus' Drake might be, and a shiny-suited man
- on the poop looked down into us, and saw what we carried.
-
- '"Lay alongside you!" he says. "We'll take that all."
-
- '"'Tis for Mus' Drake," I says, keeping away lest his size
- should lee the wind out of my sails.
-
- '"Hi! Ho! Hither! We're Lord High Admiral of England!
- Come alongside, or we'll hang ye," he says.
-
- ''Twas none of my affairs who he was if he wasn't Frankie, and
- while he talked so hot I slipped behind a green-painted ship with
- her top-sides splintered. We was all in the middest of 'em then.
-
- '"Hi! Hoi!" the green ship says. "Come alongside, honest
- man, and I'll buy your load. I'm Fenner that fought the seven
- Portugals - clean out of shot or bullets. Frankie knows me."
-
- '"Ay, but I don't," I says, and I slacked nothing.
-
- 'He was a masterpiece. Seein' I was for goin' on, he hails a
- Bridport hoy beyond us and shouts, "George! Oh, George! Wing
- that duck. He's fat!" An' true as we're all here, that squatty
- Bridport boat rounds to acrost our bows, intendin' to stop us by
- means o' shooting.
-
- 'my Aunt looks over our rail. "George," she says, "you finish
- with your enemies afore you begin on your friends."
-
- 'Him that was laying the liddle swivel-gun at us sweeps off his
- hat an' calls her Queen Bess, and asks if she was selling liquor to
- pore dry sailors. My Aunt answered him quite a piece. She was a
- notable woman.
-
- 'Then he come up - his long pennant trailing overside - his
- waistcloths and netting tore all to pieces where the Spanishers had
- grappled, and his sides black-smeared with their gun-blasts like
- candle-smoke in a bottle. We hooked on to a lower port and hung.
-
- '"Oh, Mus' Drake! Mus' Drake!" I calls up.
-
- 'He stood on the great anchor cathead, his shirt open to the
- middle, and his face shining like the sun.
-
- '"Why, Sim!" he says. just like that - after twenty year!
- "Sim," he says, "what brings you?"
-
- '"Pudden," I says, not knowing whether to laugh or cry.
-
- '"You told me to bring cannon-shot next time, an' I've
- brought 'em. "
-
- 'He saw we had. He ripped out a fathom and a half o' brimstone
- Spanish, and he swung down on our rail, and he kissed me before
- all his fine young captains. His men was swarming out of the
- lower ports ready to unload us. When he saw how I'd considered
- all his likely wants, he kissed me again.
-
- '"Here's a friend that sticketh closer than a brother!" he says.
- "Mistress," he says to my Aunt, "all you foretold on me was true.
- I've opened that road from the East to the West, and I've buried
- my heart beside it. "
-
- '"I know," she says. "That's why I be come."
-
- '"But ye never foretold this"; he points to both they
- great fleets.
-
- '"This don't seem to me to make much odds compared to
- what happens to a man," she says. "Do it?"
-
- '"Certain sure a man forgets to remember when he's proper
- mucked up with work. Sim," he says to me, "we must shift every
- living Spanisher round Dunkirk corner on to our Dutch sands
- before morning. The wind'll come out of the North after this
- calm - same as it used - and then they're our meat."
-
- '"Amen," says I. "I've brought you what I could scutchel up
- of odds and ends. Be you hit anywhere to signify?"
-
- '"Oh, our folk'll attend to all that when we've time," he says.
- He turns to talk to my Aunt, while his men flew the stuff out of
- our hold. I think I saw old Moon amongst 'em, but he was too
- busy to more than nod like. Yet the Spanishers was going to
- prayers with their bells and candles before we'd cleaned out the
- ANTONY. Twenty-two ton o' useful stuff I'd fetched him.
- '"Now, Sim," says my Aunt, "no more devouring of Mus'
- Drake's time. He's sending us home in the Bridport hoy. I want
- to speak to them young springalds again."
-
- '"But here's our ship all ready and swept," I says.
-
- '"Swep' an' garnished," says Frankie. "I'm going to fill her
- with devils in the likeness o' pitch and sulphur. We must shift the
- Dons round Dunkirk comer, and if shot can't do it, we'll send
- down fireships."
-
- '"I've given him my share of the ANTONY," says my Aunt.
- "What do you reckon to do about yours?"
-
- '"She offered it," said Frankie, laughing.
-
- '"She wouldn't have if I'd overheard her," I says; "because I'd
- have offered my share first." Then I told him how the ANTONY's
- sails was best trimmed to drive before the wind, and seeing he was
-
- full of occupations we went acrost to that Bridport hoy, and
- left him.
-
- 'But Frankie was gentle-born, d'ye see, and that sort they never
- overlook any folks' dues.
-
- 'When the hoy passed under his stern, he stood bare-headed on
- the poop same as if my Aunt had been his Queen, and his
- musicianers played "Mary Ambree" on their silver trumpets
- quite a long while. Heart alive, little maid! I never meaned to
- make you look sorrowful!"
-
- Bunny Lewknor in his sackcloth petticoats burst through the
- birch scrub wiping his forehead.
-
- 'We've got the stick to rights now! She've been a whole hatful
- o' trouble. You come an' ride her home, Mus' Dan and Miss Una!'
-
- They found the proud wood-gang at the foot of the slope, with
- the log double-chained on the tug.
-
- 'Cattiwow, what are you going to do with it?'said Dan, as they
- straddled the thin part.
-
- 'She's going down to Rye to make a keel for a Lowestoft
- fishin'-boat, I've heard. Hold tight!'
-
- Cattiwow cracked his whip, and the great log dipped and
- tilted, and leaned and dipped again, exactly like a stately ship
- upon the high seas.
-
-
-
- Frankie's Trade
-
-
- Old Horn to All Atlantic said:
- (A-hay O! To me O!)
- 'Now where did Frankie learn his trade?
- For he ran me down with a three-reef mains'le.'
- (All round the Horn!)
-
- Atlantic answered: 'Not from me!
- You'd better ask the cold North Sea,
- For he ran me down under all plain canvas.'
- (All round the Horn!)
-
- The North Sea answered: 'He's my man,
- For he came to me when he began -
- Frankie Drake in an open coaster.
- (All round the Sands!)
-
- 'I caught him young and I used him sore,
- So you never shall startle Frankie more,
- Without capsizing Earth and her waters.
- (All round the Sands!)
-
- 'I did not favour him at all,
- I made him pull and I made him haul -
- And stand his trick with the common sailors.
- (All round the Sands!)
-
- 'I froze him stiff and I fogged him blind,
- And kicked him home with his road to find
- By what he could see of a three-day snow-storm.
- (All round the Sands!)
-
- 'I learned him his trade o' winter nights,
- 'Twixt Mardyk Fort and Dunkirk lights
- On a five-knot tide with the forts a-firing.
- (All round the Sands!)
-
- 'Before his beard began to shoot,
- I showed him the length of the Spaniard's foot -
- And I reckon he clapped the boot on it later.
- (All round the Sands!)
- 'If there's a risk which you can make
- That's worse than he was used to take
- Nigh every week in the way of his business;
- (All round the Sands!)
-
- 'If there's a trick that you can try
- Which he hasn't met in time gone by,
- Not once or twice, but ten times over;
- (All round the Sands!)
-
- 'If you can teach him aught that's new,
- (A-hay O! To me O!)
- I'll give you Bruges and Niewport too,
- And the ten tall churches that stand between 'em.'
- Storm along, my gallant Captains!
- (All round the Horn!)
-
-
-
- THE TREE OF JUSTICE
-
-
-
- The Ballad of Minepit Shaw
-
-
- About the time that taverns shut
- And men can buy no beer,
- Two lads went up by the keepers' hut
- To steal Lord Pelham's deer.
-
- Night and the liquor was in their heads -
- They laughed and talked no bounds,
- Till they waked the keepers on their beds,
- And the keepers loosed the hounds.
-
- They had killed a hart, they had killed a hind,
- Ready to carry away,
- When they heard a whimper down the wind
- And they heard a bloodhound bay.
-
- They took and ran across the fern,
- Their crossbows in their hand,
- Till they met a man with a green lantern
- That called and bade 'em stand.
-
- 'What are you doing, O Flesh and Blood,
- And what's your foolish will,
- That you must break into Minepit Wood
- And wake the Folk of the Hill?'
-
- 'Oh, we've broke into Lord Pelham's park,
- And killed Lord Pelham's deer,
- And if ever you heard a little dog bark
- You'll know why we come here!'
-
- 'We ask you let us go our way,
- As fast as we can flee,
- For if ever you heard a bloodhound bay,
- You'll know how pressed we be.'
-
- 'Oh, lay your crossbows on the bank
- And drop the knife from your hand,
- And though the hounds are at your flank
- I'll save you where you stand!'
- They laid their crossbows on the bank,
- They threw their knives in the wood,
- And the ground before them opened and sank
- And saved 'em where they stood.
- 'Oh, what's the roaring in our ears
- That strikes us well-nigh dumb?'
- 'Oh, that is just how things appears
- According as they come.'
-
- 'What are the stars before our eyes
- That strike us well-nigh blind?'
- 'Oh, that is just how things arise
- According as you find.'
-
- 'And why's our bed so hard to the bones
- Excepting where it's cold?'
- 'Oh, that's because it is precious stones
- Excepting where 'tis gold.
-
- 'Think it over as you stand
- For I tell you without fail,
- If you haven't got into Fairyland
- You're not in Lewes Gaol.'
-
- All night long they thought of it,
- And, come the dawn, they saw
- They'd tumbled into a great old pit,
- At the bottom of Minepit Shaw.
-
- And the keepers' hound had followed 'em close
- And broke her neck in the fall;
- So they picked up their knives and their cross-bows
- And buried the dog. That's all.
-
- But whether the man was a poacher too
- Or a Pharisee so bold -
- I reckon there's more things told than are true,
- And more things true than are told.
-
-
-
- The Tree of Justice
-
- It was a warm, dark winter day with the Sou'-West wind singing
- through Dallington Forest, and the woods below the Beacon.
- The children set out after dinner to find old Hobden, who had a
- three months' job in the Rough at the back of Pound's Wood. He
- had promised to get them a dormouse in its nest. The bright leaf
- Still clung to the beech coppice; the long chestnut leaves lay
- orange on the ground, and the rides were speckled with scarlet-
- lipped sprouting acorns. They worked their way by their own
- short cuts to the edge of Pound's Wood, and heard a horse's feet
- just as they came to the beech where Ridley the keeper hangs up
- the vermin. The poor little fluffy bodies dangled from the
- branches - some perfectly good, but most of them dried to
- twisted strips.
-
- 'Three more owls,' said Dan, counting. 'Two stoats, four jays,
- and a kestrel. That's ten since last week. Ridley's a beast.'
-
- 'In my time this sort of tree bore heavier fruit.' Sir Richard
- Dalyngridge reined up his grey horse, Swallow, in the ride
- behind them. [This is the Norman knight they met the year before
- in PUCK OF POOK'S HILL. See 'Young Men at the Manor,' 'The Knights
- of the Joyous Venture,' and 'Old Men at Pevensey,' in that book.]
- 'What play do you make?'he asked.
-
- 'Nothing, Sir. We're looking for old Hobden,'Dan replied.'He
- promised to get us a sleeper.'
-
- 'Sleeper? A DORMEUSE, do you say?'
-
- 'Yes, a dormouse, Sir.'
- 'I understand. I passed a woodman on the low grounds. Come!'
- He wheeled up the ride again, and pointed through an opening
- to the patch of beech-stubs, chestnut, hazel, and birch that old
- Hobden would turn into firewood, hop-poles, pea-boughs, and
- house-faggots before spring. The old man was as busy as a beaver.
-
- Something laughed beneath a thorn, and Puck stole out, his
- finger on his lip.
-
- 'Look!' he whispered. 'Along between the spindle-trees.
- Ridley has been there this half-hour.'
-
- The children followed his point, and saw Ridley the keeper in
- an old dry ditch, watching Hobden as a cat watches a mouse.
-
- 'Huhh!' cried Una. 'Hobden always 'tends to his wires before
- breakfast. He puts his rabbits into the faggots he's allowed to take
- home. He'll tell us about 'em tomorrow.'
-
- 'We had the same breed in my day,' Sir Richard replied, and
- moved off quietly, Puck at his bridle, the children on either side
- between the close-trimmed beech stuff.
-
- 'What did you do to them?' said Dan, as they repassed Ridley's
- terrible tree.
-
- 'That!' Sir Richard jerked his head toward the dangling owls.
-
- 'Not he!' said Puck. 'There was never enough brute Norman in
- you to hang a man for taking a buck.'
-
- 'I - I cannot abide to hear their widows screech. But why am I
- on horseback while you are afoot?' He dismounted lightly,
- tapped Swallow on the chest, so that the wise thing backed
- instead of turning in the narrow ride, and put himself at the head
- of the little procession. He walked as though all the woods
- belonged to him. 'I have often told my friends,' he went on, 'that
- Red William the King was not the only Norman found dead in a
- forest while he hunted.'
-
- 'D'you mean William Rufus?'said Dan.
-
- 'Yes,' said Puck, kicking a clump of red toad-stools off a
- dead log.
-
- 'For example, there was a knight new from Normandy,' Sir
- Richard went on, 'to whom Henry our King granted a manor in
- Kent near by. He chose to hang his forester's son the day before a
- deer-hunt that he gave to pleasure the King.'
-
- 'Now when would that be?' said Puck, and scratched an ear
- thoughtfully.
-
- 'The summer of the year King Henry broke his brother Robert
- of Normandy at Tenchebrai fight. Our ships were even then at
- Pevensey loading for the war.'
-
- 'What happened to the knight?'Dan asked.
-
- 'They found him pinned to an ash, three arrows through his
- leather coat. I should have worn mail that day.'
-
- 'And did you see him all bloody?'Dan continued.
-
- 'Nay, I was with De Aquila at Pevensey, counting horseshoes,
- and arrow-sheaves, and ale-barrels into the holds of the ships.
- The army only waited for our King to lead them against Robert in
- Normandy, but he sent word to De Aquila that he would hunt
- with him here before he set out for France.'
-
- 'Why did the King want to hunt so particularly?' Una demanded.
-
- 'If he had gone straight to France after the Kentish knight
- was killed, men would have said he feared being slain like the
- knight. It was his duty to show himself debonair to his English
- people as it was De Aquila's duty to see that he took no harm
- while he did it, But it was a great burden! De Aquila, Hugh, and I
- ceased work on the ships, and scoured all the Honour of the Eagle -
- all De
- Aquila's lands - to make a fit, and, above all, a safe sport for
- our King. Look!'
-
- The ride twisted, and came out on the top of Pound's Hill
- Wood. Sir Richard pointed to the swells of beautiful, dappled
- Dallington, that showed like a woodcock's breast up the valley.
- 'Ye know the forest?' said he.
-
- 'You ought to see the bluebells there in Spring!' said Una.
- 'I have seen,' said Sir Richard, gazing, and stretched out his
- hand. 'Hugh's work and mine was first to move the deer gently
- from all parts into Dallington yonder, and there to hold them till
- the King came. Next, we must choose some three hundred
- beaters to drive the deer to the stands within bowshot of the King.
- Here was our trouble! In the mellay of a deer-drive a Saxon
- peasant and a Norman King may come over-close to each other.
- The conquered do not love their conquerors all at once. So we
- needed sure men, for whom their village or kindred would
- answer in life, cattle, and land if any harm come to the King. Ye
- see?'
-
- 'If one of the beaters shot the King,' said Puck, 'Sir Richard
- wanted to be able to punish that man's village. Then the village
- would take care to send a good man.'
-
- 'So! So it was. But, lest our work should be too easy, the King
- had done such a dread justice over at Salehurst, for the killing of
- the Kentish knight (twenty-six men he hanged, as I heard), that
- our folk were half mad with fear before we began. It is easier to
- dig out a badger gone to earth than a Saxon gone dumb-sullen.
- And atop of their misery the old rumour waked that Harold the
- Saxon was alive and would bring them deliverance from us
- Normans. This has happened every autumn since Santlache fight.'
-
- 'But King Harold was killed at Hastings,'said Una.
-
- 'So it was said, and so it was believed by us Normans, but our
- Saxons always believed he would come again. That rumour did
- not make our work any more easy.'
-
- Sir Richard strode on down the far slope of the wood, where
- the trees thin out. It was fascinating to watch how he managed his
- long spurs among the lumps of blackened ling.
-
- 'But we did it!' he said. 'After all, a woman is as good as a man
- to beat the woods, and the mere word that deer are afoot makes
- cripples and crones young again. De Aquila laughed when Hugh
- told him over the list of beaters. Half were women; and many of
- the rest were clerks - Saxon and Norman priests.
-
- 'Hugh and I had not time to laugh for eight days, till De Aquila,
- as Lord of Pevensey, met our King and led him to the first
- shooting-stand - by the Mill on the edge of the forest. Hugh and I
- - it was no work for hot heads or heavy hands - lay with our
- beaters on the skirts of Dallington to watch both them and the
- deer. When De Aquila's great horn blew we went forward, a line
- half a league long. Oh, to see the fat clerks, their gowns tucked
- up, puffing and roaring, and the sober millers dusting the under-
- growth with their staves; and, like as not, between them a Saxon
- wench, hand in hand with her man, shrilling like a kite as she ran,
- and leaping high through the fern, all for joy of the sport.'
- 'Ah! How! Ah! How! How-ah! Sa-how-ah!' Puck bellowed
- without warning, and Swallow bounded forward, ears cocked,
- and nostrils cracking.
-
- 'Hal-lal-lal-lal-la-hai-ie!' Sir Richard answered in a high clear
- shout.
-
- The two voices joined in swooping circles of sound, and a
- heron rose out of a red osier-bed below them, circling as though
- he kept time to the outcry. Swallow quivered and swished his
- glorious tail. They stopped together on the same note.
-
- A hoarse shout answered them across the bare woods.
-
- 'That's old Hobden,'said Una.
-
- 'Small blame to him. It is in his blood,' said Puck. 'Did your
- beaters cry so, Sir Richard?'
-
- 'My faith, they forgot all else. (Steady, Swallow, steady!) They
- forgot where the King and his people waited to shoot. They
- followed the deer to the very edge of the open till the first flight of
- wild arrows from the stands flew fair over them.
-
- 'I cried, "'Ware shot! 'Ware shot!" and a knot of young knights
- new from Normandy, that had strayed away from the Grand
- Stand, turned about, and in mere sport loosed off at our line
- shouting: "'Ware Santlache arrows! 'Ware Santlache arrows!" A
- jest, I grant you, but too sharp. One of our beaters answered in
- Saxon: "'Ware New Forest arrows! 'Ware Red William's
- arrow!" so I judged it time to end the jests, and when the boys saw
- my old mail gown (for, to shoot with strangers I count the same
- as war), they ceased shooting. So that was smoothed over, and we
- gave our beaters ale to wash down their anger. They were
- excusable! We - they had sweated to show our guests good sport,
- and our reward was a flight of hunting-arrows which no man
- loves, and worse, a churl's jibe over hard-fought, fair-lost
- Hastings fight. So, before the next beat, Hugh and I assembled and
- called the beaters over by name, to steady them. The greater part
- we knew, but among the Netherfield men I saw an old, old man,
- in the dress of a pilgrim.
-
- 'The Clerk of Netherfield said he was well known by repute for
- twenty years as a witless man that journeyed without rest to all
- the shrines of England. The old man sits, Saxon fashion, head
- between fists. We Normans rest the chin on the left palm.
- '"Who answers for him?" said I. "If he fails in his duty, who
- will pay his fine?"
-
- '"Who will pay my fine?" the pilgrim said. "I have asked that
- of all the Saints in England these forty years, less three months
- and nine days! They have not answered!" When he lifted his thin
- face I saw he was one-eyed, and frail as a rush.
- '"Nay, but, Father," I said, "to whom hast thou commended
- thyself-?" He shook his head, so I spoke in Saxon: "Whose man
- art thou?"
-
- '"I think I have a writing from Rahere, the King's jester," said
- he after a while. "I am, as I suppose, Rahere's man."
-
- 'He pulled a writing from his scrip, and Hugh, coming up,
- read it.
-
- 'It set out that the pilgrim was Rahere's man, and that Rahere
- was the King's jester. There was Latin writ at the back.
-
- '"What a plague conjuration's here?" said Hugh, turning it
- over. "Pum-quum-sum oc-occ. Magic?"
-
- '"Black Magic," said the Clerk of Netherfield (he had been a
- monk at Battle). "They say Rahere is more of a priest than a fool
- and more of a wizard than either. Here's Rahere's name writ, and
- there's Rahere's red cockscomb mark drawn below for such as
- cannot read." He looked slyly at me.
-
- '"Then read it," said I, "and show thy learning." He was a
- vain little man, and he gave it us after much mouthing.
-
- '"The charm, which I think is from Virgilius the Sorcerer,
- says: 'When thou art once dead, and Minos' (which is a heathen
- judge) 'has doomed thee, neither cunning, nor speechcraft, nor
- good works will restore thee!' A terrible thing! It denies any
- mercy to a man's soul!"
-
- '"Does it serve?" said the pilgrim, plucking at Hugh's cloak.
- "Oh, man of the King's blood, does it cover me?"
-
- 'Hugh was of Earl Godwin's blood, and all Sussex knew it,
- though no Saxon dared call him kingly in a Norman's hearing.
- There can be but one King.
-
- '"It serves," said Hugh. "But the day will be long and hot.
- Better rest here. We go forward now."
-
- '"No, I will keep with thee, my kinsman," he answered like a
- child. He was indeed childish through great age.
-
- 'The line had not moved a bowshot when De Aquila's great
- horn blew for a halt, and soon young Fulke - our false Fulke's son
- - yes, the imp that lit the straw in Pevensey Castle [See 'Old Men
- at Pevensey' in PUCK OF POOK'S HILL.] - came thundering up
- a woodway.
-
- '"Uncle," said he (though he was a man grown, he called me
- Uncle), "those young Norman fools who shot at you this morn
- are saying that your beaters cried treason against the King. It has
- come to Harry's long ears, and he bids you give account of it.
- There are heavy fines in his eye, but I am with you to the hilt,
- Uncle!"
- 'When the boy had fled back, Hugh said to me: "It was Rahere's
- witless man that cried, ''Ware Red William's arrow!' I heard him,
- and so did the Clerk of Netherfield."
-
- '"Then Rahere must answer to the King for his man," said I.
- "Keep him by you till I send," and I hastened down.
-
- 'The King was with De Aquila in the Grand Stand above
- Welansford down in the valley yonder. His Court - knights and
- dames - lay glittering on the edge of the glade. I made my
- homage, and Henry took it coldly.
- '"How came your beaters to shout threats against me?"
- said he.
-
- '"The tale has grown," I answered. "One old witless man
- cried out, ''Ware Red William's arrow,' when the young knights
- shot at our line. We had two beaters hit."
-
- '"I will do justice on that man," he answered. "Who is his
- master?"
-
- '"He's Rahere's man," said I.
-
- '"Rahere's?" said Henry. "Has my fool a fool?"
-
- 'I heard the bells jingle at the back of the stand, and a red leg
- waved over it; then a black one. So, very slowly, Rahere the
- King's jester straddled the edge of the planks, and looked down
- on us, rubbing his chin. Loose-knit, with cropped hair, and a sad
- priest's face, under his cockscomb cap, that he could twist like a
- strip of wet leather. His eyes were hollow-set.
-
- '"Nay, nay, Brother," said he. "If I suffer you to keep your
- fool, you must e'en suffer me to keep mine."
-
- 'This he delivered slowly into the King's angry face! My faith, a
- King's jester must be bolder than lions!
-
- '"Now we will judge the matter," said Rahere. "Let these two
- brave knights go hang my fool because he warned King Henry
- against running after Saxon deer through woods full of Saxons.
- 'Faith, Brother, if thy Brother, Red William, now among the
- Saints as we hope, had been timely warned against a certain arrow
- in New Forest, one fool of us four would not be crowned fool of
- England this morning. Therefore, hang the fool's fool, knights!"
- 'Mark the fool's cunning! Rahere had himself given us order to
- hang the man. No King dare confirm a fool's command to such a
- great baron as De Aquila; and the helpless King knew it.
-
- '"What? No hanging?" said Rahere, after a silence. "A' God's
- Gracious Name, kill something, then! Go forward with the
- hunt!"
-
- 'He splits his face ear to ear in a yawn like a fish-pond.
- "Henry," says he, "the next time I sleep, do not pester me with
- thy fooleries." Then he throws himself out of sight behind the
- back of the stand.
-
- 'I have seen courage with mirth in De Aquila and Hugh, but
- stark mad courage of Rahere's sort I had never even guessed at.'
-
- 'What did the King say?' cried Dan.
-
- 'He had opened his mouth to speak, when young Fulke, who
- had come into the stand with us, laughed, and, boy-like, once
- begun, could not check himself. He kneeled on the instant for
- pardon, but fell sideways, crying: "His legs! Oh, his long,
- waving red legs as he went backward!"
-
- 'Like a storm breaking, our grave King laughed, - stamped and
- reeled with laughter till the stand shook. So, like a storm, this
- strange thing passed!
-
- 'He wiped his eyes, and signed to De Aquila to let the drive
- come on.
-
- 'When the deer broke, we were pleased that the King shot from
- the shelter of the stand, and did not ride out after the hurt beasts as
- Red William would have done. Most vilely his knights and
- barons shot!
-
- De Aquila kept me beside him, and I saw no more of Hugh till
- evening. We two had a little hut of boughs by the camp, where I
- went to wash me before the great supper, and in the dusk I heard
- Hugh on the couch.
-
- '"Wearied, Hugh?" said I.
-
- '"A little," he says. "I have driven Saxon deer all day for a
- Norman King, and there is enough of Earl Godwin's blood left in
- me to sicken at the work. Wait awhile with the torch."
-
- 'I waited then, and I thought I heard him sob.'
-
- 'Poor Hugh! Was he so tired?' said Una. 'Hobden says beating
- is hard work sometimes.'
-
- 'I think this tale is getting like the woods,' said Dan, 'darker and
- twistier every minute.'
- Sir Richard had walked as he talked, and though the children
- thought they knew the woods well enough, they felt a little lost.
-
- 'A dark tale enough,' says Sir Richard, 'but the end was not all
- black. When we had washed, we went to wait on the King at meat
- in the great pavilion. just before the trumpets blew for the Entry -
- all the guests upstanding - long Rahere comes posturing up to
- Hugh, and strikes him with his bauble-bladder.
-
- '"Here's a heavy heart for a joyous meal!" he says. "But each
- man must have his black hour or where would be the merit of
- laughing? Take a fool's advice, and sit it out with my man. I'll
- make a jest to excuse you to the King if he remember to ask for
- you. That's more than I would do for Archbishop Anselm."
-
- 'Hugh looked at him heavy-eyed. "Rahere?" said he. "The
- King's jester? Oh, Saints, what punishment for my King!" and
- smites his hands together.
- '"Go - go fight it out in the dark," says Rahere, "and thy
- Saxon Saints reward thee for thy pity to my fool." He pushed him
- from the pavilion, and Hugh lurched away like one drunk.'
-
- 'But why?' said Una. 'I don't understand.'
-
- 'Ah, why indeed? Live you long enough, maiden, and you shall
- know the meaning of many whys.' Sir Richard smiled. 'I wondered
- too, but it was my duty to wait on the King at the High
- Table in all that glitter and stir.
-
- 'He spoke me his thanks for the sport I had helped show him,
- and he had learned from De Aquila enough of my folk and my
- castle in Normandy to graciously feign that he knew and had
- loved my brother there. (This, also, is part of a king's work.)
- Many great men sat at the High Table - chosen by the King for
- their wits, not for their birth. I have forgotten their names, and
- their faces I only saw that one night. But' - Sir Richard turned in
- his stride - 'but Rahere, flaming in black and scarlet among our
- guests, the hollow of his dark cheek flushed with wine - long,
- laughing Rahere, and the stricken sadness of his face when he was
- not twisting it about - Rahere I shall never forget.
-
- 'At the King's outgoing De Aquila bade me follow him, with
- his great bishops and two great barons, to the little pavilion. We
- had devised jugglers and dances for the Court's sport; but Henry
- loved to talk gravely to grave men, and De Aquila had told him of
- my travels to the world's end. We had a fire of apple-wood, sweet
- as incense, - and the curtains at the door being looped up, we
- could hear the music and see the lights shining on mail and
- dresses.
-
- 'Rahere lay behind the King's chair. The questions he darted
- forth at me were as shrewd as the flames. I was telling of our fight
- with the apes, as ye called them, at the world's end. [See 'The
- Knights of the Joyous Venture' in PUCK OF POOK'S HILL.]
- '"But where is the Saxon knight that went with you?" said
- Henry. "He must confirm these miracles."
-
- '"He is busy," said Rahere, "confirming a new miracle."
-
- '"Enough miracles for today," said the King. "Rahere, you
- have saved your long neck. Fetch the Saxon knight."
-
- '"Pest on it," said Rahere. "Who would be a King's jester? I'll
- bring him, Brother, if you'll see that none of your home-brewed
- bishops taste my wine while I am away." So he jingled forth
- between the men-at-arms at the door.
-
- 'Henry had made many bishops in England without the Pope's
- leave. I know not the rights of the matter, but only Rahere dared
- jest about it. We waited on the King's next word.
-
- '"I think Rahere is jealous of you," said he, smiling, to Nigel
- of Ely. He was one bishop; and William of Exeter, the other -
- Wal-wist the Saxons called him - laughed long. "Rahere is a priest
- at heart. Shall I make him a bishop, De Aquila?" says the King.
-
- '"There might be worse," said our Lord of Pevensey. "Rahere
- would never do what Anselm has done."
-
- 'This Anselm, Archbishop of Canterbury, had gone off raging
- to the Pope at Rome, because Henry would make bishops
- without his leave either. I knew not the rights of it, but De Aquila
- did, and the King laughed.
-
- '"Anselm means no harm. He should have been a monk, not a
- bishop," said the King. "I'll never quarrel with Anselm or his
- Pope till they quarrel with my England. If we can keep the King's
- peace till my son comes to rule, no man will lightly quarrel with
- our England."
-
- '"Amen," said De Aquila. "But the King's peace ends when
- the King dies."
-
- 'That is true. The King's peace dies with the King. The custom
- then is that all laws are outlaw, and men do what they will till the
- new King is chosen.
-
- '"I will amend that," said the King hotly. "I will have it so that
- though King, son, and grandson were all slain in one day, still the
- King's peace should hold over all England! What is a man that his
- mere death must upheave a people? We must have the Law."
-
- '"Truth," said William of Exeter; but that he would have said
- to any word of the King.
-
- 'The two great barons behind said nothing. This teaching was
- clean against their stomachs, for when the King's peace ends, the
- great barons go to war and increase their lands. At that instant we
- heard Rahere's voice returning, in a scurril Saxon rhyme against
- William of Exeter:
-
- '"Well wist Wal-wist where lay his fortune
- When that he fawned on the King for his crozier,"
-
- and amid our laughter he burst in, with one arm round Hugh, and
- one round the old pilgrim of Netherfield.
-
- '"Here is your knight, Brother," said he, "and for the better
- disport of the company, here is my fool. Hold up, Saxon Samson,
- the gates of Gaza are clean carried away!"
-
- 'Hugh broke loose, white and sick, and staggered to my side;
- the old man blinked upon the company.
-
- 'We looked at the King, but he smiled.
-
- '"Rahere promised he would show me some sport after supper
- to cover his morning's offence," said he to De Aquila. "So this is
- thy man, Rahere?"
-
- '"Even so," said Rahere. "My man he has been, and my
- protection he has taken, ever since I found him under the gallows
- at Stamford Bridge telling the kites atop of it that he was - Harold
- of England!"
-
- 'There was a great silence upon these last strange words, and
- Hugh hid his face on my shoulder, woman-fashion.
-
- '"It is most cruel true," he whispered to me. "The old man
- proved it to me at the beat after you left, and again in our hut even
- now. It is Harold, my King!"
-
- 'De Aquila crept forward. He walked about the man and swallowed.
-
- '"Bones of the Saints!" said he, staring.
-
- '"Many a stray shot goes too well home," said Rahere.
-
- The old man flinched as at an arrow. "Why do you hurt me
- still?" he said in Saxon. "It was on some bones of some Saints that
- I promised I would give my England to the Great Duke." He
- turns on us all crying, shrilly: "Thanes, he had caught me at
- Rouen - a lifetime ago. If I had not promised, I should have lain
- there all my life. What else could I have done? I have lain in a strait
- prison all my life none the less. There is no need to throw stones at
- me. " He guarded his face with his arms, and shivered.
- "Now his madness will strike him down," said Rahere. "Cast
- out the evil spirit, one of you new bishops."
-
- 'Said William of Exeter: "Harold was slain at Santlache fight.
- All the world knows it."
-
- '"I think this man must have forgotten," said Rahere. "Be
- comforted, Father. Thou wast well slain at Hastings forty years
- gone, less three months and nine days. Tell the King."
-
- 'The man uncovered his face. "I thought they would stone
- me," he said. "I did not know I spoke before a King." He came to
- his full towering height - no mean man, but frail beyond belief.
-
- 'The King turned to the tables, and held him out his own cup of
- wine. The old man drank, and beckoned behind him, and, before
- all the Normans, my Hugh bore away the empty cup, Saxon-
- fashion, upon the knee.
-
- "It is Harold!" said De Aquila. "His own stiff-necked blood
- kneels to serve him.
-
- "Be it so," said Henry. "Sit, then, thou that hast been Harold
- of England."
-
- 'The madman sat, and hard, dark Henry looked at him between
- half-shut eyes. We others stared like oxen, all but De Aquila, who
- watched Rahere as I have seen him watch a far sail on the sea.
-
- 'The wine and the warmth cast the old man into a dream. His
- white head bowed; his hands hung. His eye indeed was opened,
- but the mind was shut. When he stretched his feet, they were
- scurfed and road-cut like a slave's.
-
- '"Ah, Rahere," cried Hugh, "why hast thou shown him thus?
- Better have let him die than shame him - and me!"
-
- '"Shame thee?" said the King. "Would any baron of mine
- kneel to me if I were witless, discrowned, and alone, and Harold
- had my throne?"
-
- '"No," said Rahere. "I am the sole fool that might do it,
- Brother, unless" - he pointed at De Aquila, whom he had only
- met that day - "yonder tough Norman crab kept me company.
- But, Sir Hugh, I did not mean to shame him. He hath been
- somewhat punished through, maybe, little fault of his own."
-
- , "Yet he lied to my Father, the Conqueror, " said the King, and
- the old man flinched in his sleep.
-
- '"Maybe," said Rahere, "but thy Brother Robert, whose
- throat we purpose soon to slit with our own hands -"
-
- '"Hutt!" said the King, laughing. "I'll keep Robert at my table
- for a life's guest when I catch him. Robert means no harm. It is all
- his cursed barons."
-
- '"None the less," said Rahere, "Robert may say that thou hast
- not always spoken the stark truth to him about England. I should
- not hang too many men on that bough, Brother."
- '"And it is certain," said Hugh, "that" - he pointed to the old
- man - "Harold was forced to make his promise to the Great Duke."
-
- '"Very strongly, forced," said De Aquila. He had never any
- pride in the Duke William's dealings with Harold before Hastings.
- Yet, as he said, one cannot build a house all of straight sticks.
-
- '"No matter how he was forced," said Henry, "England was
- promised to my Father William by Edward the Confessor. Is it
- not so?" William of Exeter nodded. "Harold confirmed that
- promise to my Father on the bones of the Saints. Afterwards he
- broke his oath and would have taken England by the strong hand. "
- '"Oh! La! La!" Rahere rolled up his eyes like a girl. "That ever
- England should be taken by the strong hand!"
-
- 'Seeing that Red William and Henry after him had each in just
- that fashion snatched England from Robert of Normandy, we
- others knew not where to look. But De Aquila saved us quickly.
- '"Promise kept or promise broken," he said, "Harold came
- near enough to breaking us Normans at Santlache. "
-
- "Was it so close a fight, then?" said Henry.
-
- "A hair would have turned it either way," De Aquila
- answered. "His house-carles stood like rocks against rain. Where
- wast thou, Hugh, in it?"
-
- '"Among Godwin's folk beneath the Golden Dragon till your
- front gave back, and we broke our ranks to follow," said Hugh.
-
- "But I bade you stand! I bade you stand! I knew it was all a
- deceit!" Harold had waked, and leaned forward as one crying
- from the grave.
-
- '"Ah, now we see how the traitor himself was betrayed!" said
- William of Exeter, and looked for a smile from the King.
-
- '"I made thee Bishop to preach at my bidding," said Henry;
- and turning to Harold, "Tell us here how thy people fought us?"
- said he. "Their sons serve me now against my Brother Robert!"
-
- 'The old man shook his head cunningly. "Na - Na - Na!" he
- cried. "I know better. Every time I tell my tale men stone me.
- But, Thanes, I will tell you a greater thing. Listen!" He told us
- how many paces it was from some Saxon Saint's shrine to another
- shrine, and how many more back to the Abbey of the Battle.
-
- '"Ay," said he. "I have trodden it too often to be out even ten
- paces. I move very swiftly. Harold of Norway knows that, and so
- does Tostig my brother. They lie at ease at Stamford Bridge, and
- from Stamford Bridge to the Battle Abbey it is -" he muttered
- over many numbers and forgot us.
-
- '"Ay, " said De Aquila, all in a muse. "That man broke Harold
- of Norway at Stamford Bridge, and came near to breaking us at
- Santlache - all within one month."
-
- '"But how did he come alive from Santlache fight?" asked the
- King. "Ask him! Hast thou heard it, Rahere?"
- "Never. He says he has been stoned too often for telling the
- tale. But he can count you off Saxon and Norman shrines till
- daylight," said Rahere and the old man nodded proudly.
-
- '"My faith!" said Henry after a while. "I think even my Father
- the Great Duke would pity if he could see him.
-
- '"How if he does see?" said Rahere.
-
- 'Hugh covered his face with his sound hand. "Ah, why hast
- thou shamed him?" he cried again to Rahere.
-
- '"No - no," says the old man, reaching to pluck at Rahere's
- cape. "I am Rahere's man. None stone me now," and he played
- with the bells on the scollops of it.
-
- '"How if he had been brought to me when you found him?"
- said the King to Rahere.
-
- You would have held him prisoner again - as the Great Duke
- did," Rahere answered.
-
- '"True," said our King. "He is nothing except his name. Yet
- that name might have been used by stronger men to trouble my
- England. Yes. I must have made him my life's guest - as I shall
- make Robert."
-
- '"I knew it," said Rahere. "But while this man wandered mad
- by the wayside, none cared what he called himself."
-
- '"I learned to cease talking before the stones flew," says the old
- man, and Hugh groaned.
-
- '"Ye have heard!" said Rahere. "Witless, landless, nameless,
- and, but for my protection, masterless, he can still make shift to
- bide his doom under the open sky.
- '"Then wherefore didst thou bring him here for a mock and a
- shame?" cried Hugh, beside himself with woe.
-
- '"A right mock and a just shame!" said William of Exeter.
-
- '"Not to me," said Nigel of Ely. "I see and I tremble, but I
- neither mock nor judge."
- Well spoken, Ely." Rahere falls into the pure fool again. "I'll
- pray for thee when I turn monk. Thou hast given thy blessing on a
- war between two most Christian brothers." He meant the war
- forward 'twixt Henry and Robert of Normandy. "I charge you,
- Brother," he says, wheeling on the King, "dost thou mock my
- fool?"
- The King shook his head, and so then did smooth William
- of Exeter.
-
- '"De Aquila, does thou mock him?" Rahere jingled from one
- to another, and the old man smiled.
-
- '"By the Bones of the Saints, not I," said our Lord of Pevensey.
- "I know how dooms near he broke us at Santlache.
-
- '"Sir Hugh, you are excused the question. But you, valiant,
- loyal, honourable, and devout barons, Lords of Man's justice in
- your own bounds, do you mock my fool?"
-
- 'He shook his bauble in the very faces of those two barons
- whose names I have forgotten. "Na - Na!" they said, and waved
- him back foolishly enough.
-
- 'He hies him across to staring, nodding Harold, and speaks
- from behind his chair.
-
- '"No man mocks thee, Who here judges this man? Henry of
- England - Nigel - De Aquila! On your souls, swift with the
- answer!" he cried.
-
- 'None answered. We were all - the King not least - over-borne
- by that terrible scarlet-and-black wizard-jester.
-
- '"Well for your souls," he said, wiping his brow. Next, shrill
- like a woman: "Oh, come to me!" and Hugh ran forward to hold
- Harold, that had slidden down in the chair.
-
- '"Hearken," said Rahere, his arm round Harold's neck. "The
- King - his bishops - the knights - all the world's crazy chessboard
- neither mock nor judge thee. Take that comfort with thee,
- Harold of England!"
-
- 'Hugh heaved the old man up and he smiled.
-
- '"Good comfort," said Harold. "Tell me again! I have been
- somewhat punished."
- 'Rahere hallooed it once more into his ear as the head rolled. We
- heard him sigh, and Nigel of Ely stood forth, praying aloud.
-
- '"Out! I will have no Norman!" Harold said as clearly as I
- speak now, and he refuged himself on Hugh's sound shoulder,
- and stretched out, and lay all still.'
-
- 'Dead?' said Una, turning up a white face in the dusk.
-
- 'That was his good fortune. To die in the King's presence, and
- on the breast of the most gentlest, truest knight of his own house.
- Some of us envied him,' said Sir Richard, and fell back to take
- Swallow's bridle.
-
- 'Turn left here,' Puck called ahead of them from under an oak.
- They ducked down a narrow path through close ash plantation.
-
- The children hurried forward, but cutting a corner charged
- full-abreast into the thorn-faggot that old Hobden was carrying
- home on his back.
- 'My! My!' said he. 'Have you scratted your face, Miss Una?'
-
- 'Sorry! It's all right,' said Una, rubbing her nose. 'How many
- rabbits did you get today?'
-
- 'That's tellin'!' the old man grinned as he re-hoisted his faggot.
- 'I reckon Mus' Ridley he've got rheumatism along o' lyin' in the
- dik to see I didn't snap up any. Think o' that now!'
-
- They laughed a good deal while he told them the tale.
-
- 'An' just as he crawled away I heard some one hollerin' to the
- hounds in our woods,' said he. 'Didn't you hear? You must ha'
- been asleep sure-ly.'
-
- 'Oh, what about the sleeper you promised to show us?'
- Dan cried.
-
- ''Ere he be - house an' all!' Hobden dived into the prickly heart
- of the faggot and took out a dormouse's wonderfully woven nest
- of grass and leaves. His blunt fingers parted it as if it had been
- precious lace, and tilting it toward the last of the light he showed
- the little, red, furry chap curled up inside, his tail between his eyes
- that were shut for their winter sleep.
-
- 'Let's take him home. Don't breathe on him,' said Una. 'It'll
- make him warm and he'll wake up and die straight off. Won't he,
- Hobby?'
-
- 'Dat's a heap better by my reckonin' than wakin' up and findin'
- himself in a cage for life. No! We'll lay him into the bottom o' this
- hedge. Dat's jus' right! No more trouble for him till come Spring.
- An' now we'll go home.'
-
-
-
- A Carol
-
-
- Our Lord Who did the Ox command
- To kneel to Judah's King,
- He binds His frost upon the land
- To ripen it for Spring -
- To ripen it for Spring, good sirs,
- According to His word;
- Which well must be as ye can see -
- And who shall judge the Lord?
-
- When we poor fenmen skate the ice
- Or shiver on the wold,
- We hear the cry of a single tree
- That breaks her heart in the cold -
- That breaks her heart in the cold, good sirs,
- And rendeth by the board;
- Which well must be as ye can see -
- And who shall judge the Lord?
-
- Her wood is crazed and little worth
- Excepting as to burn
- That we may warm and make our mirth
- Until the Spring return -
- Until the Spring return, good sirs,
- When people walk abroad;
- Which well must be as ye can see -
- And who shall judge the Lord?
-
- God bless the master of this house,
- And all that sleep therein!
- And guard the fens from pirate folk,
- And keep us all from sin,
- To walk in honesty, good sirs,
- Of thought and deed and word!
- Which shall befriend our latter end -
- And who shall judge the Lord?
-
-
-
- ****End of the Project Gutenberg Etext of Rewards and Fairies****
-
-